THE LIBRARY OF THE UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA GIFT OF Professor Charles M. Gilbert THE ANCIENT LIFE-HISTORY OF THE EARTH THE ANCIENT LIFE-HISTORY OF THE EARTH A COMPREHENSIVE OUTLINE OF THE PRINCIPLES AND LEADING FACTS OF PAL^ON- TOLOGICAL SCIENCE BY II. ALLEYNE ^ICHOLSON M.D., D.Sc., M.A., PH.D. (GoTT.), F.R.S.E., F.L.S. PROFESSOR OF NATURAL HISTORY IN THE UNIVERSITY OF ST ANDREWS NEW YORK: D. APPLETON AND COMPANY, 72 FIFTH AVENUE. 1895. 'r Add«l GIFT RTH SCIENCES UBBAfiY PREFACE. TlIE study of Palaeontology, or the science which is concerned with the living beings which flourished upon the globe during past periods of its history, may be pursued by two parallel but essentially distinct paths. By the one method of inquiry, we may study the anatomical characters and structure of the innumerable extinct forms of life which lie buried in the rocks simply as so many organisms, with but a slight and secondary reference to the time at which they lived. By the other method, fossil animals are regarded prin- cipally as so many landmarks in the ancient records of the world, and are studied historically and as regards their relations to the chronological succession of the strata in which they are entombed. In so doing, it is of course impossible to wholly ignore their structural characters, and their relationships with animals now living upon the earth ; but these points are held to occupy a subordinate place, and to require nothing more than a comparatively general attention. In a former work, the Author has endeavoured to furnish a summary of the more important facts of M878175 VI PREFACE. Palaeontology regarded in its strictly scientific aspect, as a mere department of the great science of Biology. The present work, on the other hand, is an attempt to treat Palaeontology more especially from its historical side, and in its more intimate relations with Geology. In accordance with this object, the introductory portion of the work is devoted to a consideration of the general principles of Palaeontology, and the bearings of this science upon various geological problems — such as the mode of formation of the sedimentary rocks, the reac- tions of living beings upon the crust of the earth, and the sequence in time of the fossiliferous formations. The second portion of the work deals exclusively with Historical Palaeontology, each formation being consid- ered separately, as regards its lithological nature and subdivisions, its relations to other formations, its geo- graphical distribution, its mode of origin, and its char- acteristic life-forms. In the consideration of the characteristic fossils of each successive period, a general account is given of their more important zoological characters and their relations to living forms ; but the technical language of Zoology has been avoided, and the aid of illustrations has been freely called into use. It may therefore be hoped that the work may be found to be available for the purposes of both the Geological and the Zoological student ; since it is essentially an outline of Historical Palaeontology, and the student of either of the above- mentioned sciences must perforce possess some know- ledge of the last. Whilst primarily intended for stu- dents, it may be added that the method of treatment adopted has been so far untechnical as not to render the work useless to the general reader who may desire PREFACE. Vil to acquire some knowledge of a subject of such vast and universal interest. In carrying out the object which he has held before him, the Author can hardly expect, from the nature of the materials with which he has had to deal, that he has kept himself absolutely clear of errors, both of omission and commission. The subject, however, is one to which he has devoted the labour of many years, both in studying the researches of others and in personal investigations of his own; and he can only trust that £uch errors as may exist will be found to belong chiefly to the former class, and to be neither serious nor numerous. It need only be added that the work is necessarily very limited in its scope, and that the necessity of not assuming a thorough previous acquaint- ance with Natural History in the reader has inexorably restricted its range still further. The Author does not, therefore, profess to have given more than a merely general outline of the subject ; and those who desire to obtain a more minute and detailed knowledge of Palaeontology, must have recourse to other and more elaborate treatises. UNITED COLLEGE, ST ANDREWS. October 2, 1876. CONTENTS. PART I. PRINCIPLES OF PALAEONTOLOGY. INTRODUCTION. PAGE The general objects of geological science— The older theories of catastrophistic and intermittent action — The more modern doc- trines of continuous and uniform action — Bearing of these doc- trines respectively on the origin of the existing terrestrial order — Elements of truth in Catastrophism — General truth of the doc- trine of Continuity — Geological time, .... i-io CHAPTER I. Definition of Palaeontology — Nature of Fossils — Different processes of fossilisation, 10-14 CHAPTER II. Aqueous and igneous rocks — General characters of the sedimentary rocks — Mode of formation of the sedimentary rocks — Definition of the term "formation " — Chief divisions of the aqueous rocks — Mechanically-formed rocks, their characters and mode of origin — Chemically and organically f&rmed rocks — Calcareous rocks — Chalk, its microscopic structure and mode of formation — Lime- stone, varieties, structure, and origin — Phosphate of lime — Con- cretions— Sulphate of lime — Silica and siliceous deposits of vari- ous kinds — Greensands— Red clays — Carbon and carbonaceous deposits, 14-36 CHAPTER III. Chronological succession of the fossiliferous rocks — Tests of age of strata — Value of Palseontological evidence in stratigraphical Geo- logy— Gene'ral sequence of the great formations, . . 37-44 CONTENTS. CHAPTER IV. The breaks in the palaeontological and geological record — Use of the term "contemporaneous" as applied to groups of strata — General sequence of strata and of life-forms interfered with by more or less extensive gaps — Unconformability — Phenomena im- plied by this— Causes of the imperfection of the paloeontological record, 44'52 CHAPTER V. Conclusions to be drawn from fossils — Age of rocks — Mode of origin of any fossiliferous bed — Fluviatile, lacustrine, and marine de- posits— Conclusions as to climate — Proofs of elevation and subsi- dence of portions of the earth's crust derived from fossils, . 52-56 CHAPTER VI. The biological relations of fossils — Extinction of life-forms — Geolo- gical range of different species — Persistent types of life — Modern origin of existing animals and plants — Reference of fossil forms to the existing primary divisions of the animal kingdom — Depart- ure of the older types of life from those now in existence — Re- semblance of the fossils of a given formation to those of the for- mation next above and next below — Introduction of new life- forms, « , , 57-6l PART II. HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. CHAPTER VII. The Laurentian and Huronian periods — General nature, divisions, and geographical distribution of the Laurentian deposits — Lower and Upper Laurentian — Reasons for believing that the Lauren- tian rocks are not azoic based upon their containing limestones, beds of oxide of iron, and graphite — The characters, chemical composition, and minute structure of Eozoon Canadense— Compar- ison of Eozoon with existing Foraminifera — Archceospharince — Huronian formation — Nature and distribution of Huronian de- posits—Organic remains of the Huronian — Literature, • 65-76 CHAPTER VIII. The Cambrian period— General succession of Cambrian deposits in Wales — Lower Cambrian and Upper Cambrian — Cambrian de- posits of the continent of Europe and North America — Life of the Cambrian period — Fucoids — Eophyton — Oldhamia — Sponges — Echinoderms — Annelides — Crustaceans — Structure of Trilobites — Brachiopods — Pteropods, Gasteropods, and Bivalves — Cephalo- pods— Literature, . . . . . . .- . 77-90 CONTENTS. xi CHAPTER IX. The Lower Silurian period — The Silurian rocks general!/ — Limits of Lower and Upper Silurian — General succession, subdivisions, and characters of the Lower Silurian rocks of Wales — General succes- sion, subdivisions, and characters of the Lower Silurian rocks of the North American continent — Life of the period — Fucoids — Protozoa — Graptolites — Structure of Graptolites — Corals — Gene- ral structure of Corals — Crinoids — Cystideans — General characters of Cystideans — Annelides — Crustaceans — Polyzoa — Brachiopods — Bivalve and Univalve Molluscs — Chambered Cephalopods — General characters of the Cephalopoda — Conodonts, . . 90-114 CHAPTER X. The Upper Silurian period — General succession of the Upper Silurian deposits of Wales — Upper Silurian deposits of North America — Life of the Upper Silurian — Plants — Protozoa — Graptolites — Corals — Crinoids — General structure of Crinoids — Star-fishes — Annelides — Crustaceans — Eurypterids — Polyzoa — Brachiopods — Structure of Brachiopods— Bivalves and Univalves — Pteropods — Cephalopods — Fishes — Silurian literature, . . 115-132 CHAPTER XI. The Devonian period'— Relations between the Old Red Sandstone and the marine Devonian deposits — The Old Red Sandstone of Scotland — The Devonian strata of Devonshire — Sequence and subdivisions of the Devonian deposits of North America — Life of the period — Plants — Protozoa — Corals — Crinoids — Pentremites — Annelides — Crustaceans — Insects — Polyzoa — Brachiopods — Bi- valves — Univalves — Pteropods — Cephalopods — Fishes — General divisions of the Fishes — Palaeontological evidence as to the inde- pendent existence of the Devonian system as a distinct formation — Literature, ......... 132-157 CHAPTER XII. The Carboniferous period— Relations of Carboniferous rocks to De- vonian— The Carboniferous Limestone or Sub - Carboniferous series — The Millstone-grit and the Coal-measures — Life of the period — Structure and mode of formation of Coal — Plants of the Coal, 157-170 CHAPTER XIII. Animal life of the Carboniferous period — Protozoa— Corals — Crinoids — Pentremites — Structure of Pentremites — Echinoids — Structure of Echinoidea — Annelides — Crustacea — Insects — Arachnids — Myriapods— Polyzoa — Brachiopods — Bivalves and Univalves — Cephalopods — Fishes — Labyrinthodont Amphibians — Litera- ture, .......... 170-192 xii CONTENTS. CHAPTER XIV, The Permian period— General succession, characters, and mode of formation of the Permian deposits — Life of the period — Plants — Protozoa — Corals — Echinoderms — Annelides — Crustaceans — Polyzoa — Brachiopods — Bivalves — Univalves — Pteropods — Cephalopods — Fishes — Amphibians — Reptiles — Literature, 192-203 CHAPTER XV. The Triassic period — General characters and subdivisions of the Trias of the Continent of Europe and Britain — Trias of North America — Life of the period— Plants — Echinoderms — Crustaceans — Poly- zoa— Brachiopods — Bivalves — Univalves — Cephalopods — Inter- mixture of Palaeozoic with Mesozoic types of Molluscs — Fishes — Amphibians — Reptiles — Supposed footprints of Birds — Mammals — Literature, 203-225 CHAPTER XVI. The Jurassic period — General sequence and subdivisions of the Juras- sic deposits in Britain— Jurassic rocks of North America — Life of the period — Plants — Corals — Echinoderms — Crustaceans— In- sects — Brachiopods — Bivalves — Univalves — Pteropods — Tetra- branchiate Cephalopods — Dibranchiate Cephalopods — Fishes — Reptiles — Birds — Mammals — Literature, . . . 226-256 CHAPTER XVII. The Cretaceous period — General succession and subdivisions of the Cretaceous rocks in Britain — Cretaceous rocks of North America — Life of the period— Plants — Protozoa — Corals — Echinoderms — Crustaceans — Polyzoa — Brachiopods — Bivalves — Univalves — Tetrabranchiate and Dibranchiate Cephalopods — Fishes — Rep- tiles— Birds— Literature, . . . . . . . 256-284 CHAPTER XVIII. The Eocene period — Relations between the Kainozoic and Mesozoic rocks in Europe and in North America— Classification of the Tertiary deposits — The sequence and subdivisions of the Eocene rocks of Britain and France — Eocene strata of the United States — Life of the period — Plants — Foraminifera— Corals — Echino- derms— Mollusca — Fishes — Reptiles — Birds— Mammals, . 284-305 CHAPTER XIX. The Miocene period — Miocene strata of Britain— Of France — Of Belgium — Of Austria — Of Switzerland — Of Germany — Of Greece — Of India — Of North America — Of the Arctic regions — Life of the period — Vegetation of the Miocene period — Foraminifera — Corals— Echinoderms — Articulates— Mollusca — Fishes — Amphi- bians— Reptiles — Mammals, . . . . . 305-323 CONTENTS. Xlll CHAPTER XX. The Pliocene period— Pliocene deposits of Britain— Of Europe— Of North America— Life of the period — Climate of the period as indicated by the Invertebrate animals — The Pliocene Mammalia —Literature relating to the Tertiary deposits and their fossils, 323-333 CHAPTER XXI. The Post- Pliocene period— Division of the Quaternary deposits into Post-Pliocene and Recent — Relations of the Post-Pliocene de- posits of the northern hemisphere to the *' Glacial period " — Pre-Glacial deposits — Glacial deposits — Arctic Mollusca in Gla- cial beds — Post-Glacial deposits — Nature and mode of formation of high-level and low-level gravels — Nature and mode of forma- tion of cavern-deposits — Kent's Cavern — Post-Pliocene deposits of the southern hemisphere, ...... 334-344 CHAPTER XXII. Life of the Post-Pliocene period— Effect of the coming on and de- parture of the Glacial period upon the animals inhabiting the northern hemisphere — Birds of the Post-Pliocene — Mammalia of the Post-Pliocene — Climate of the Post-Glacial period as deduced from the Post-Glacial Mammals — Occurrence cf the bones and implements of Man in Post-Pliocene deposits in association with the remains of extinct Mammalia — Literature relating to the Post- Pliocene period, 344-366 CHAPTER XXIII. The succession of life upon the globe — Gradual and successive intro- duction of life-forms — What is meant by " lower " and "higher" groups of animals and plants — Succession in time of the great groups of animals in the main corresponding with their zoological order — Identical phenomena in the vegetable kingdom — Persist- ent types of life — High organisation of many early forms — Bear- ings of Palaeontology on the general doctrine of Evolution, 367-374 APPENDIX.— Tabular view of the chief Divisions of the Animal Kingdom, 375"378 GLOSSARY, 379-395 INDEX, 396-407 LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. FIG. I. 2. 3- 4- 5- 6. 7- 9- 10. 12. 13- IS- 1 6. 17- PAGE Cast of Trigonia longa, . 12 Microscopic section of the wood of a fossil Conifer, 1 3 Microscopic section of the wood of the Larch, . 13 Section of Carboniferous strata, Kinghorn, Fife, 1 6 Diagram illustrating the • formation of stratified deposits, ... 17 Microscopic section of a calcareous breccia, . 19 Microscopic section of White Chalk, . . 22 Organisms in Atlantic - Ooze, ... 23 Crinoidal marble, . . 24 Piece of Nummulitic lime- stone, Pyramids, . 25 Microscopic section of Fo- raminiferal limestone — Carboniferous, Amer- FIG. 1 8. 19. 20. 21. 22. 23- 24. 25- 26. 27. 28. 29- 30- 3*; 32- 33- 34- ica, . • . - . .27 Microscopic section of Lower Silurian lime- stone, . . .27 Microscopic section of oolitic limestone, Ju- rassic, . . -29 Microscopic section of ooolitic limestone, Car- boniferous, . . 30 35. Organisms in Barbadoes • earth, . . -33 Organisms in Richmond 36. • earth, • . . . 33 37. Ideal section of the crust 38. of the earth, . . 43 39. Unconformable junction of Chalk and Eocene rocks, ... 49 Erect trunk of a Sigillaria, 54 Diagrammatic section of the Laurentian rocks, 66 Microscopic section of Laurentian limestone, 67 Fragment of a mass of Eoztion Canadense, . 69 Diagram illustrating the structure of Eozoon, . 70 Microscopic- section of Eozoon Canadense, . 71 ATonionina and Gromia, . 72 Group of shells of living Foraminifera, . . 73 Diagrammatic section of Cambrian strata, . 78 Eophyton Linneanum, . 81 Oldhauiia antiqua, . 82 Scolithus Canadensis, . 83 Group of Cambrian Trilo- bites, ... 85 Group of characteristic Cambrian fossils, . 88 Fragment of Dictyonema sociale, ... 89 Generalised section of the Lower Silurian rocks of Wales, ... 94 Generalised section of the Lower Silurian rocks of North America, . 9^ Licrophycus Oltaivaensis, 97 A stylospongia flmmorsa, . 98 Stromatopora rugosa, . 99 Dichograptus octobrach iatus , I o I XVI LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. 40. Didymograptus divarica- tUSy .... 41. Diplograptus pristis, 42. Phyllograptus typus, 43. Zaphrentis Stokesi, . 44. Strombodes pentagonus, . 45. Columnaria alveolata, 46. Group of Cystideans, 47. Group of Lower Silurian Crustaceans, 48. Ptilodictya falcifonnis, 49. Ptilodictya Schaffei'i, 50. Group of Lower Silurian Brachiopods, 51. Group of Lower Silurian Brachiopods, 52. Murchisonia gj-acilis, 53. Belter ophon argo, . 54. Maclurea crenulata, 55. Orthoceras crebriseptum, 56. Restoration of Orthoceras, 57. Generalised section of the Upper Silurian rocks, 58. Monograptus priodon, 59. Halysites catenularia and H. agglomerata, . 60. Group of Upper Silurian Star- fishes, 61. Protasier Sedgwickii, 62. Group of Upper Silurian Crinoids, . 63. Planolites vulgaris, . 64. Group of Upper Silurian Trilobites, . 65. Pterygotus Anglicus, 66. Group of Upper Silurian Polyzoa, 67. Spirifera hysterica, . 68. Group of Upper Silurian Brachiopods, 69. Group of Upper Silurian Brachiopods, 70. Pentamerus Knightii, 71. Cardiola interrupta, C. jibrosa, and Pterin&a subfalcata, . 72. Group of Upper Silurian Univalves, 73. Tentaculites ornatiis, 74. Pteraspis Banksii, . 75- Onchus tenuistriatus and Thelodus, . 76. Generalised section of the Devonian rocks of North America, 77. Psilophyton princess, 78. 102 79- IO2 80. 102 81. IO4 82. 104 83- 84- io6 85. 86. 107 109 87- 109 88. 109 89- 1 10 in 90. in 91. 112 92. 113 93- "3 94- U7 at 119 97. 98. 120 99. 121 100. 121 101. 102. .122 I23 .103. 124 104. 125 105. 106. 126 126 107. 127 127 108. I2S 109. no. in. 128 112. 129 114. 129 130 I30 "5- 116. 137 117. 138 Prolotaxites Logani, . 139 Strotnatopora tuber culata, 140 Cystiphyllum vesicttlostim, 141 Zaphrentis cornicula, . 141 Heliophyllum exigimm, 141 Crepidophyllum Archiaci, 142 Pavosites Gothlandica, . 143 Favosites hemispkcerica, 143 Spirorbis omphalodes and S. Arkonensis, . .144 Spirorbis laxus and S. spinulifera, . .144 Group of Devonian Tri- lobites, . . 144 Wing of Platephemera antiqna, . . .145 Clathropora intertexta, . 146 Ceriopora Hamiltonensis, 146 Fenestella magnified, . 146 Retepora PhUlipsi, . 146 Fenestella cribrosa, . 146 Spirifera sculptilis, . 147 Spirifera mucronata, . 147 Atrypa reticularis, . 148 Strophomena rhomboid' alts, . . . .148 Platyceras dumosum, . 148 Conularia ornata, . 149 Clymenia Sedgwickii, . 149 Group of Fishes from the Devonian rocks of North America, . 151 Cephalaspis Lyellii, . 152 Pterichlhys cornutus, . 153 Polypterus and Osteolepis, 154 Holoptychius nobilissi- mus, . . . .154 Generalised section of the Carboniferous rocks of the North of Eng- land, . . . .161 Odontopteris Schlotheimii, 164 Calamites c anna: for mis, 165 Lepidodendron Sternbergii, 167 Sigillaria Gra'seri, . 1 68 Stigmaria ficoides, . 1 69 Trigonocarpum ovatum, 170 Microscopic section of Foraminiferal limestone — Carboniferous, North America, . . .172 Fusulina cylindrica, . 172 Group of Carboniferous Corals, . . .174 Platycrinus tricontadac- tylus, . . . .175 LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. XV11 n8. P. conoideus, 1 19. Archtfocidaris ellipticus, 1 20. Spirorbis Carbonarizis, . 121. Prestivickia rotundata, . 122. Group of Carboniferous Crustaceans, 123. Cyclophthalmus senior, . 1 24. Xylobius Sigillari/• 177 158. 178 159- 179 1 60. 180 161. 181 162. 182 163. 182 164. 165. 183 1 66. 185 167. 186 1 68. 187 169. 188 170. 189 190 171. 172. 195 173- 196 198 174. 199 !75- 199 176. 2OI 177. 178. 2O6 208 179. 209 180. 210 181. 2IO 182. 183. 211 212 184. 2I4 185. 2I5 1 86. 216 187. 1 88. 217 189. 217 190. 218 191. 192. 219 193- 220 194. 195- 221 196. 197. 198. 222 199. 200. 223 2OI. Molar tooth of Micru- lestes antiyuuSi . . 223 Myrmecobiiis fasciatns, . 224 Generalised section of the Jurassic rocks, . 229 Mantdlia megalophylla, 230 Thecosmilia annularis, . 231 Pentacrimis fasciculosus, 232 Hemicidaris crenularis, . 233 JEryon arctiformis, , 234 Group of Jurassic Bra- chiopods, . . . 235 Ostrea Mars hit, . .236 Gryphcea incurva, . . 236 Diceras arietina, . . 236 Nerincea Goodhallii, . 237 Ammonites Hutnphresi- amts, . . . 238 Ammonites bifrons, . 238 Beloteuthis subcostata, . 240 Belemnite restored ; dia- gram of Belemnite ; Belemnites canaliculata, 241 Tetragonolepis, . .241 Acrodus nobilis, . . 242 Ichthyosaurus com munis, 242 Plesiosaurus dolichodeirus^ 244 Pterodactylus crassiros- tris, .... 246 Ramphorhynchus Buck- landi, restored, . . 248 Skull of Megalosaurus, . 249 Arch . rOCk, itS COmpO- The fragments are all of small size, and nent grains being equally the ^ ^fe^dtmStm! result of mechanical attrition /Q^f^V matrix of crystalline limestone. and having equally been trans- ported from a distance ; and the same is true of the ordinary sand of the sea-shore, which is nothing more than an uncon- solidated sandstone. Other so-called sands and sandstones, though equally mechanical in their origin, are truly calcareous in their nature, and are more or less entirely composed of carbonate of lime. Of this kind are the shell-sand so com- mon on our coasts, and the coral- sand which is so largely formed in the neighbourhood of coral-reefs. In these cases the rock is composed of fragments of the skeletons of shell- fish, and numerous other marine animals, together, in many instances, with the remains of certain sea-weeds (Corallines, Nullipores, &c.) which are endowed with the power of secret- a Fig. 6 -Microscopic section of a calcare- a rnprl-iini ous breccia in the Lower Silurian (Coniston a mecnani- LimestOMe) of Shap Wells> Westmoreland. 20 PRINCIPLES OF PALEONTOLOGY. ing carbonate of lime from the sea-water. Lastly, in cer- tain rocks still finer in their texture than sandstones, such as the various mud-rocks and shales, we can still recognise a mechanical source and origin. If slices of any of these rocks sufficiently thin to be transparent are examined under the microscope, it will be found that they are composed of minute grains of different sizes, which are all more or less worn and rounded, and which clearly show, therefore, that they have been subjected to mechanical attrition. All the above-mentioned rocks, then, are mechanically-formed rocks; and they are often spoken of as " Derivative Rocks," in consequence of the fact that their particles can be shown to have been mechanically derived from other pre-existent rocks. It follows from this that every bed of any mechanically-formed rock is the measure and equivalent of a corresponding amount of destruction of some older rock. It is not necessary to enter here into a minute account of the subdivisions of these rocks, but it may be mentioned that they may be divided into two principal groups, according to their chemical composition. In the one group we have the so-called Arenaceous (Lat arena, sand) or Siliceous Rocks, which are essentially composed of larger or smaller grains of flint or silica. In this group are comprised ordinary sand, the varieties of sandstone and grit, and most conglomerates and breccias. We shall, however, after- wards see that some siliceous rocks are of organic origin. In the second group are the so-called Argillaceous (Lat. argilla, clay) Rocks, which contain a larger or smaller amount of clay or hydrated silicate of alumina in their composition. Under this head come clays, shales, marls, marl-slate, clay-slates, and most flags and flagstones. B. CHEMICALLY-FORMED ROCKS. — In this section are com- prised all those Aqueous or Sedimentary Rocks which have been formed by chemical agencies. As many of these chemi- cal agencies, however, are exerted through the medium of living beings, whether animals or plants, we get into this section a number of what may be called " organically -formed rocks" These are of the greatest possible importance to the palaeontologist, as being to a greater or less extent composed of the actual remains of animals or vegetables, and it will therefore be necessary to consider their character and struc- ture in some detail. By far the most important of the chemically-formed rocks are the so-called Calcareous Rocks (Lat. calx, lime), com- prising all those which contain a large proportion of carbonate of lime, or are wholly composed of this substance. Carbonate THE FOSSILIFEROUS ROCKS. 21 of lime is soluble in water holding a certain amount of car- bonic acid gas in solution ; and it is, therefore, found in larger or smaller quantity dissolved in all natural waters, both fresh and salt, since these waters are always to some extent charged with the above-mentioned solvent gas. A great number of aquatic animals, however, together with some aquatic plants, are endowed with the power of separating the lime thus held in solution in the water, and of reducing it again to its solid condition. In this way shell-fish, crustaceans, sea-urchins, corals, and an immense number of other animals, are enabled to construct their skeletons ; whilst some plants form hard structures within their tissues in a precisely similar manner. \Ve do meet with some calcareous deposits, such as the "stalactites" and "stalagmites" of caves, the "calcareous tufa" and "travertine" of some hot springs, and the spongy calcareous deposits of so-called " petrifying springs," which are purely chemical in their origin, and owe nothing to the operation of living beings. Such deposits are formed simply by the precipitation of carbonate of lime from water, in con- sequence of the evaporation from the water of the carbonic acid gas which formerly held the lime in solution ; but, though sometimes forming masses of considera'Je thickness and of geological importance, they do not concern us here. Almost all the limestones which occur in the series of the stratified rocks are, primarily at any rate, of organic origin, and have been, directly or indirectly, produced by the action of certain lime-making animals or plants, or both combined. The pre- sumption as to all the calcareous rocks, which cannot be clearly shown to have been otherwise produced, is that they are thus organically formed ; and in many cases this presump- tion can be readily reduced to a certainty. There are many varieties of the calcareous rocks, but the following are those which are of the greatest importance : — Chalk is a calcareous rock of a generally soft and pulver- ulent texture, and with an earthy fracture. It varies in its purity, being sometimes almost wholly composed of carbonate of lime, and at other times more or less intermixed with foreign matter. Though usually soft and readily reducible to powder, chalk is occasionally, as in the north of Ireland, tolerably hard and compact ; but it never assumes the crystalline aspect and stony density of limestone, except it be in immediate contact with some mass of igneous rock. By means of the microscope, the true nature and mode of formation of chalk can be determined with the greatest ease. In the case of the harder varieties, the examination can be conducted bv means 22 PRINCIPLES OF PALEONTOLOGY. of slices ground down to a thinness sufficient to render them transparent ; but in the softer kinds the rock must be disinte- grated under water, and the debris examined microscopically. When investigated by either of these methods, chalk is found to be a genuine organic rock, being composed of the shells or hard parts of innumerable marine animals of different kinds, some entire, some fragmentary, cemented together by a matrix of very finely granular carbonate of lime. Foremost amongst the animal remains which so largely compose chalk are the shells of the minute creatures which will be subsequently cpoken of under the name of Foraminifera (fig. 7), and which, in spite of their microscopic dimensions, play a more im- portant part in the process of lime-making than perhaps any other of the larger inhabitants of the ocean. As chalk is found in beds of hundreds of feet in thick- ness, and of great purity, there was long felt much difficulty in satisfactorily accounting for its mode of formation and ori- gin. By the researches of Carpenter, Wyville Thomson, Huxley, Wallich, and others, it has, however, been shown that there is now forming, in the profound depths of our great oceans, a deposit which is in all essential respects identical with chalk, and which is generally known as the " Atlantic ooze," from its having been first discovered in that sea. This ooze is found at great depths (5000 to over 15,000 feet) in both the Atlantic and Pacific, covering enormously large areas of the sea-bottom, and it presents itself as a whitish-brown, sticky, impalpable mud, very like greyish chalk when dried. Chemical examination shows that the ooze is composed almost wholly of carbonate of lime, and microscopical examination proves it to be of organic origin, and to be made up of the remains of living beings. The principal forms of these belong to the Foraminifera, and the commonest of these are the irregularly-chambered shells of Globigerina, absolutely indistinguishable from the Globigerincz which are so largely present in the chalk (fig. 8). Along with these occur fragments of the skeletons of other larger creatures, Fig. 7. — Section of Gravesend Chalk, examined by transmitted light and highly magnified. Besides the entire shells of Globigerina, Rotalia, and Textnlaria, numerous detached chambers of G.'obi- gerina are seen. (Original.) THE FOSSILIFEROUS ROCKS. Fig. 8.— Organisms in the Atlantic Ooze. chiefly Forarninifera (Globigerina and Textnlaria), with Polycystina and sponge- spicules ; highly magnified. (Original.) and a certain proportion of the flinty cases of minute animal and vegetable organisms (Polycystina and Diatoms'). Though many of the minute animals, the hard parts of which form the ooze, undoubtedly live at or near the surface of the sea, others, probably, really live near the bottom ; and the ooze itself forms a congenial home for numerous sponges, sea- lilies, and other marine ani- mals which flourish at great depths in the sea. There is thus established an intimate and most interesting parallel- ism between the chalk and the ooze of modern oceans. Both are formed essentially in the same way, and the latter only requires consolidation to become actually converted into chalk. Both are fundamentally organic deposits, apparently requiring a great depth of water for their accumulation, and mainly composed of the remains of Foraminifera, together with the entire or broken skeletons of other marine animals of greater dimensions. It is to be remembered, however, that the ooze, though strictly representative of the chalk, cannot be said in any proper sense to be actually identical with the for- mation so called by geologists. A great lapse of time separates the two, and though composed of the remains of representative classes or groups of animals, it is only in the case of the lowly- organised Globigerincz, and of some other organisms of little higher grade, that we find absolutely the same kinds or species of animals in both. Limestone, like chalk, is composed of carbonate of lime, sometimes almost pure, but more commonly with a greater or less intermixture of some foreign material, such as alumina or silica. The varieties of limestone are almost innumerable, but the great majority can be clearly proved to agree with chalk in being essentially of organic origin, and in being more or less largely composed of the remains of living beings. In many instances the organic remains which compose limestone are so large as to be readily visible to the naked eye, and the rock is at once seen to be nothing more than an agglomera- tion of the skeletons, generally fragmentary, of certain marine .animals, cemented together by a matrix of carbonate of lime. 24 PRINCIPLES OF PALEONTOLOGY. This is the case, for example, with the so-called " Crinoidal Limestones " and " Encrinital Marbles " with which the geolo- gist is so familiar, especially as occurring in great beds amongst the older formations of the earth's crust. These are seen, on weathered or broken surfaces, or still better in polished slabs (hg. 9), to be composed more or less exclusively of the broken ida' marble, from the Carboniferous limestone of Dent, in York- The polished surface intersects the columns of the Crinoids at different angles, and thus gives rise to varying appearances. (Original ) V.g 9 —Slab ot L sh re, of the natural stems and detached plates of sea-lilies (Crinoids]. Similarly, other limestones are composed almost entirely of the skeletons of corals ; and such old coralline limestones can readily be paralleled by formations which we can find in actual course of production at the present day. We only need to transport ourselves to the islands of the Pacific, to the West Indies, or to the Indian Ocean, to find great masses of lime formed simi- larly by living corals, and well known to every one under the name of "coral-reefs." Such reefs are often of vast extent, both superficially and in vertical thickness, and they fully equal in this respect any of the coralline limestones of bygone ages. Again, we find other limestones — such as the celebrated " Nummulitic Limestone" (fig. 10), which sometimes attains a thickness of some thousands of feet — which are almost entirely made up of the shells of Foraminifera, In the case of the " Nummulitic Limestone," just mentioned, these shells are of large size, varying from the size of a split pea up to that of a THE FOSSILIFEROUS ROCKS. 25 florin. There are, however, as we shall see, many other lime- stones, which are likewise largely made up of Foramimferay Fig. 10. — Piece of Nummulitic Limestone from the Great Pyramid. Of the natural size. (Original.) but in which the shells are very much more minute, and would hardly be seen at all without the microscope. We may, in fact, consider that the great agents in the pro- duction of limestones in past ages have been animals belonging to the Crinoids, the Corals, and the Foraminifera. At the pre- sent day, the Crinoids have been nearly extinguished, and the few known survivors seem to have retired to great depths in the ocean ; but the two latter still actively carry on the work of lime-making, the former being very largely helped in their operations by certain lime-producing marine plants (Nullipores and Corallines}. We have to remember, however, that though the limestones, both ancient and modern, that we have just spoken of, are truly organic, they are not necessarily formed out of the remains of animals which actually lived on the precise spot where we now find the limestone itself. We may find a crinoidal limestone, which we can show to have been actually formed by the successive growth of generations of sea-lilies in place ; but we shall find many others in which the rock is made up of innumerable fragments of the skeletons of these creatures, which have been clearly worn and rubbed by the sea-waves, arid which have been mechanically transported to their present site. In the same way, a limestone may be shown to have been an actual coral-reef, by the fact that we find in it great masses of coral, growirg in their natural posi- 26 PRINCIPLES OF PALEONTOLOGY. tion, and exhibiting plain proofs that they were simply quietly buried by the calcareous sediment as they grew ; but other limestones may contain only numerous rolled and water- worn fragments of corals. This is precisely paralleled by what we can observe in our existing coral-reefs. Parts of the modern coral-islands and coral-reefs are really made up of corals, dead or alive, which actually grew on the spot where we now find them ; but other parts are composed of a limestone-rock ("coral-rock"), or of a loose sand ("coral-sand"), which is organic in the sense that it is composed of lime formed by living beings, but which, in truth, is composed of fragments of the skeletons of these living beings, mechanically trans- ported and heaped together by the sea. To take another example nearer home, we may find great accumulations of calcareous matter formed in place, by the growth of shell-fish, such as oysters or mussels ; but we can also find equally great accumulations on many of our shores in the form of " shell- sand," which is equally composed of the shells of molluscs, but which is formed by the trituration of these shells by the mechanical power of the sea- waves. We thus see that though all these limestones are primarily organic, they not uncom- monly become "mechanically-formed" rocks in a secondary sense, the materials of which they are composed being formed by living beings, but having been mechanically transported to the place where we now find them. Many limestones, as we have seen, are composed of large and conspicuous organic remains, such as strike the eye at once. Many others, however, which at first sight appear com- pact, more or less crystalline, and nearly devoid of traces of life, are found, when properly examined, to be also composed of the remains of various organisms. All the commoner lime- stones, in fact, from the Lower Silurian period onwards, can be easily proved to be thus organic rocks, if we investigate weathered or polished surfaces with a lens, or, still better, if we cut thin slices of the rock and grind these down till they are transparent. When thus examined, the rock is usually found to be composed of innumerable entire or fragmentary fossils, cemented together by a granular or crystalline matrix of carbonate of lime (figs, n and 12). When the matrix is granular, the rock is precisely similar to chalk, except that it is harder and less earthy in texture, whilst the fossils are only occasionally referable to the Foraminifera. In other cases, the matrix is more or less crystalline, and when this crystallisa- tion has been carried to a great extent, the original organic nature of the rock may be greatly or completely obscured THE FOSSILIFEROUS ROCKS. thereby. Thus, in limestones which have been greatly altered or " metamorphosed" by the combined action of heat and pres- ". Fig. n. — Section of Carboniferous Limestone from Spergen Hill, Indiana, U.S., showing numerous large-sized Forawiuifera (Endothyra) and a few oolitic grains ; magnified. (Original.) Fig 12. — Section of Coniston Limestone (Lower Silurian) from Keisley, Westmore- land ; magnified. The matrix is very coarse- ly crystalline, and the included organic re- mains are chiefly stems of Crinoids. (Ori- ginal.) sure, all traces of organic remains become annihilated, and the rock becomes completely crystalline throughout. This, for example, is the case with the ordinary white "statuary marble," slices of which exhibit under the microscope nothing but an aggregate of beautifully transparent crystals of carbonate of lime, without the smallest traces of fossils. There are also other cases, where the limestone is not necessarily highly crystalline, and where no metamorphic action in the strict sense has taken place, in which, nevertheless, the microscope fails to reveal any evidence that the rock is organic. Such cases are somewhat obscure, and doubtless depend on differ- ent causes in different instances ; but they do not affect the important generalisation that limestones are fundamentally the product of the operation of living beings. This fact remains certain ; and when we consider the vast superficial extent occupied by calcareous deposits, and the enormous collective thickness of these, the mind cannot fail to be impressed with the immensity of the period demanded for the formation of these by the agency of such humble and often microscopic creatures as Corals, Sea-lilies, Foraminifers, and Shell fish. Amongst the numerous varieties of limestone, a few are of such interest as to deserve a brief notice. Magnesian limestone- or dolomite, differs from ordinary limestone in containing a cer- tain proportion of carbonate of magnesia along with the carbon, ate of lime. The typical dolomites contain a large proportion of 28 PRINCIPLES OF PALEONTOLOGY. carbonate of magnesia, and are highly crystalline. The ordi- nary magnesian limestones (such as those of Durham in the Permian series, and the Guelph Limestones of North America in the Silurian series) are generally of a yellowish, buff, or brown colour, with a crystalline or pearly aspect, effervescing with acid much less freely than ordinary limestone, exhibiting numerous cavities from which fossils have been dissolved out, and often assuming the most varied and singular forms in con- sequence of what is called " concretionary action." Examina- tion with the microscope shows that these limestones are composed of an aggregate of minute but perfectly distinct crystals, but that minute organisms of different kinds or fragments of larger fossils, are often present as well. Other magnesian limestones, again, exhibit no striking external pecu- liarities by which the presence of magnesia would be readily recognised, and though the base of the rock is crystalline, thry are replete with the remains of organised beings. Thus many of the magnesian limestones of the Carboniferous series of the North of England are very like ordinary limestone to look at, though effervescing less freely with acids, and the microscope proves them to be charged with the remains of Foraminifera and other minute organisms. Marbles are of various kinds, all limestones which are suffi- ciently hard and compact to take a high polish going by this name. Statuary marble, and most of the celebrated foreign marbles, are " metamorphic " rocks, of a highly crystalline nature, and having all traces of their primitive organic struc- ture obliterated. Many other marbles, however, differ from ordinary limestone simply in the matter of density. Thus, many marbles (such as Derbyshire marble) are simply " cri- noidal limestones" (fig. 9); whilst various other British marbles exhibit innumerable organic remains under the mi- croscope. Black marbles owe their colour to the presence of very minute particles of carbonaceous matter, in some cases at any rate; and they may either be metamorphic, or they may be charged with minute fossils such as Foraminifera (e.g., the black limestones of Ireland, and the black marble of Dent, in Yorkshire). "Oolitic" limestones, or " oolites"' as they are often called, are of interest both to the palaeontologist and geologist. The peculiar structure to which they owe their name is that the rock is more or less entirely composed of spheroidal or oval grains, which vary in size from the head of a small pin or less up to the size of a pea. and which maybe in almost immediate contact with one another, or may be cemented together by a THE FOSSILIFEROUS ROCKS. 29 more or less abundant calcareous matrix. When the grains are pretty nearly spherical and are in tolerably close contact, the rock looks very like the roe of a fish, and the name of *• oolite " or " egg-stone " is in allusion to this. When the grains are of the size of peas or upwards, the rock is often called a "pisolite" (Lat. pisum, a pea). Limestones having this peculiar structure are especially abundant in the Jurassic formation, which is often called the " Oolitic series " for this reason; but essentially similar limestones occur not uncom- monly in the Silurian, Devonian, and Carboniferous forma- tions, and, indeed, in almost all rock-groups in which limestones are largely developed. Whatever may be the age of the for- mation in which they occur, and whatever may be the size of their component " eggs," the structure of colitic limestones is fundamentally the same. All the ordinary oolitic limestones, namely, consist of little spherical or ovoid " concretions," as they are termed, cemented together by a larger or smaller amount of crystalline carbonate of lime, together, in many instances, with numerous organic remains of different kinds (fig. 13). When examined in polished slabs, or in thin sec- tions prepared for the micro- scope, each of these little con- cretions is seen to consist of numerous concentric coats of carbonate of lime, which some- times simply surround an ima- ginary centre, but which, more commonly, have been suc- cessively deposited round some foreign body, such as a little crystal of quartz, a clus- ter of sand grains, or a minute shell. In other cases, as in SOme Of the beds Of the Car- Fig- 13. — Slice of oolitic lirrestone IT v ,1 from the Jurassic series (Coral Rag) of bomferOUS limestone 111 the Weymouth ; magnified. (Original.) North of England, where the limestone is highly "arenaceous," there is a modification of the oolitic structure. Microscopic sections of these sandy lime- stones (fig. 14) show numerous generally angular or oval grains of silica or flint, each of which is commonly surrounded by a thin coating of carbonate of lime, or sometimes by several such coats, the whole being cemented together along with the shells of Foraminifera and other minute fossils by a matrix of crystal- line calcite. As compared with typical oolites, the concretions in these limestones are usually much more irregular in shape, 4 PRINCIPLES OF PALEONTOLOGY. Fig. 14. — Slice of arenaceous and oolitic limestone from the Carbonifer- ous series of Shap, Westmoreland ; mag- nified. The section also exhibits Fora- mini/era, and other minute fossils. (Ori- ginal.) often lengthened out and almost cylindrical, at other times angular, the central nucleus being of large size, and the sur- rounding envelope of lime be- ing very thin, and often exhib- iting no concentric structure. In both these and the ordinary oolites, the structure is funda- mentally the same. Both have been formed in a sea, probably of no great depth, the waters of which were charged with carbonate of lime in solution, whilst the bottom was formed of sand intermixed with minute shells and fragments of the skeletons of larger marine ani- mals. The excess of lime in the sea-water was precipitated round the sand-grains, or round the smaller shells, as so many nuclei, and this precipitation must often have taken place time after time, so as to give rise to the concentric structure so char- acteristic of oolitic concretions. Finally, the oolitic grains thus produced were cemented together by a further precipitation of crystalline carbonate of lime from the waters of the ocean. Phosphate of Lime is another lime-salt, which is of interest to the palaeontologist. It does not occur largely in the strati- fied series, but it is found in considerable beds * in the Laurentian formation, and less abundantly in some later rock- groups, whilst it occurs abundantly in the form of nodules in parts of the Cretaceous (Upper Greensand) and Tertiary deposits. Phosphate of lime forms the larger proportion of the earthy matters of the bones of Vertebrate animals, and also occurs in less amount in the skeletons of certain of the Inver- tebrates (e.g., Crustacea). It is, indeed, perhaps more dis- tinctively than carbonate of lime, an organic compound ; and though the formation of many known deposits of phosphate of * Apart from the occurrence of phosphate of lime in actual beds in the stratified rocks, as in the Laurentian and Silurian series, this salt may also occur disseminated through the rock, when it can only be detected by chemical analysis. It is interesting to note that Dr Hicks has recently proved the occurrence of phosphate of lime in this disseminated form in rocks as old as the Cambrian, and that in quantity quite equal to what is generally found to be present in the later fossiliferous rocks. This affords a chemical proof that animal life flourished abundantly in the Cambrian THE FOSSILIFEROUS ROCKS. 31 lime cannot be positively shown to be connected with the previous operation of living beings, there is room for doubt whether this salt is not in reality always primarily a product of vital action. The phosphatic nodules of the Upper Green- sand are erroneously called " coprolites," from the belief originally entertained that they were the droppings or fossilised excrements of extinct animals ; and though this is not the case, there can be little doubt but that the phosphate of lime which they contain is in this instance of organic origin.* It appears, in fact, that decaying animal matter has a singular power of determining the precipitation around it of mineral salts dis- solved in water. Thus, when any animal bodies are undergo- ing decay at the bottom of the sea, they have a tendency to cause the precipitation from the surrounding water of any mineral matters which may be dissolved in it ; and the organic body thus becomes a centre round which the mineral matters in question are deposited in the form of a " concretion " or " nodule." The phosphatic nodules in question were formed in a sea in which phosphate of lime, derived from the destruc- tion of animal skeletons, was held largely in solution ; and a precipitation of it took place round any body, such as a decay- ing animal substance, which happened to be lying on the sea- bottom, and which offered itself as a favourable nucleus. In the same way we may explain the formation of the calcareous nodules, known as "septaria" or "cement stones," which occur so commonly in the London Clay and Kimmeridge Clay, and in which the principal ingredient is carbonate of lime. A similar origin is to be ascribed to the nodules of clay iron-stone (impure carbonate of iron) which occur so abundantly in the shales of the Carboniferous series and in other argillaceous deposits ; and a parallel modern example is to be found in the nodules of manganese, which were found by Sir Wyville Thomson, in the Challenger, to be so numer- ously scattered over the floor of the Pacific at great depths. In accordance with this mode of origin, it is exceedingly common to find in the centre of all these nodules, both old and new, some organic body, such as a bone, a shell, or a tooth, which acted as the original nucleus of precipitation, and * It has been maintained, indeed, that the phosphatic nodules so largely worked for agricultural purposes, are in themselves actual organic bodies or true fossils. In a few cases this admits of demonstration, as it can be shown that the nodule is simply an organism (such as a sponge) infiltrated with phosphate of lime (Sollas) ; but there are many other cases in which no actual structure has yet been shown to exist, and as to the true origin of which it would be hazardous to offer a positive opinion. 32 PRINCIPLES OF PALEONTOLOGY. was thus preserved in a shroud of mineral matter. Many nodules, it is true, show no such nucleus ; but it has been affirmed that all of them can be shown, by appropriate microscopical investigation, to have been formed round an original organic body to begin with (Hawkins Johnson). The last lime-salt which need be mentioned is gypsum, or sulphate of lime. This substance, apart from other modes of occurrence, is not uncommonly found interstratified with the ordinary sedimentary rocks, in the form of more or less irregu- lar beds; and in these cases it has a palaeontological import- ance, as occasionally yielding well-preserved fossils. Whilst its exact mode of origin is uncertain, it cannot be regarded as in itself an organic rock, though clearly the product of chemical action. To look at, it is usually a whitish or yellowish-white rock, as coarsely crystalline as loaf-sugar, or more so; and the microscope shows it to be composed entirely of crystals of sulphate of lime. We have seen that the calcareous or lime-containing rocks are the most important of the group of organic deposits; whilst the siliceous or flint-containing rocks may be regarded as the most important, most typical, and most generally distributed of the mechanically-formed rocks. We have, however, now briefly to consider certain deposits which are more or less completely formed of flint; but which, nevertheless, are essen- tially organic in their origin. Flint or silex, hard and intractable as it is, is nevertheless capable of solution in water to a certain extent, and even of assuming, under certain circumstances, a gelatinous or viscous condition. Hence, some hot -springs are impregnated with silica to a considerable extent ; it is present in small quantity in sea-water ; and there is reason to believe that a minute pro- portion must very generally be present in all bodies of fresh water as well. It is from this silica dissolved in the water that many animals and some plants are enabled to construct for themselves flinty skeletons; and we find that these animals and plants are and have been sufficiently numerous to give rise to very considerable deposits of siliceous matter by the mere accumulation of their skeletons. Amongst the animals which require special mention in this connection are the microscopic organisms which are known to the naturalist as Polycystina. These little creatures are of the lowest possible grade of organ- isation, very closely related to the animals which we have pre- viously spoken of as fbraminifera,\)U\. differing in the fact that they secrete a shell or skeleton composed of flint instead of lime. The Polycystina occur abundantly in our present seas; THE FOSSILIFEROUS ROCKS. 33 and their shells are present in some numbers in the ooze which is found at great depths in the Atlantic and Pacific oceans, being easily recognised by their exquisite shape, their glassy transparency, the general presence of longer or shorter spines, and the sieve-like perforations in the walls. Both in Barbadoes and in the Nicobar islands occur geological formations which are composed of the flinty skeletons of these microscopic animals ; the deposit in the former locality attaining a great thickness, and having been long known to workers with the microscope under the name of " Barbadoes earth " (fig. 15). In addition to flint -producing animals, we have also the great group of fresh -water and marine microscopic plants Fig. 15. — Shells of Po7ycysthia from Fig. 16. — Cases of Diatoms in the Ricli- " Barbadoes earth;" greatly magniiied. mond "Infusorial earth;" highly magni- (Original.) fied. (Original.) known as Diatoms, which likewise secrete a siliceous skeleton, often of great beauty. The skeletons of Diatoms are found abundantly at the present day in lake-deposits, guano, the silt of estuaries, and in the mud which covers many parts of the sea-bottom; they have been detected in strata of great age; and in spite of their microscopic dimensions, they have not un- commonly accumulated to form deposits of great thickness, and of considerable superficial extent. Thus the celebrated deposit of "tripoli" (" Polir-schiefer ") of Bohemia, largely worked as polishing-powder, is composed wholly, or almost wholly, of the flinty cases of Diatoms, of which it is calculated that no less than forty-one thousand millions go to make up a single cubic inch of the stone. Another celebrated deposit is the so-called " Infusorial earth " of Richmond in Virginia, where there is a stratum in places thirty feet thick, composed almost entirely of the microscopic shells of Diatoms. Nodules or layers of flint, or the impure variety of flint 34 PRINCIPLES OF PALEONTOLOGY. known as chert, are found in limestones of almost all ages from the Silurian upwards ; but they are especially abundant in the chalk. When these flints are examined in thin and trans- parent slices under the microscope, or in polished sections, they are found to contain an abundance of minute organic bodies — such as Foraminifera, sponge-spicules, &c. — embedded in a siliceous basis. In many instances the flint contains larger organisms — such as a Sponge or a Sea-urchin. As the flint has completely surrounded and infiltrated the fossils which it contains, it is obvious that it must have been deposited from sea-water in a gelatinous condition, and subsequently have hardened. That silica is capable of assuming this viscous and soluble condition is known ; and the formation of flint may therefore be regarded as due to the separation of silica from the sea-water and its deposition round some organic body in a sta'te of chemical change or decay, just as nodules of phos- phate of lime or carbonate of iron are produced. The exist- ence of numerous organic bodies in flint has long been known; but it should be added that a recent observer (Mr Hawkins Johnson) asserts that the existence of an organic structure can be demonstrated by suitable methods of treatment, even in the actual matrix or basis of the flint* In addition to deposits formed of flint itself, there are other siliceous deposits formed by certain silicates, and also of organic origin. It has been shown, namely — by observations carried out in our present seas — that the shells of Foraminifera are liable to become completely infiltrated by silicates (such as " glauconite," or silicate of iron and potash). Should the actual calcareous shell become dissolved away subsequent to this infiltration — as is also liable to occur — then, in place of the shells of the Foraminifera, we get a corresponding number of green sandy grains of glauconite, each grain being the cast of a single shell. It has thus been shown that the green sand found covering the sea-bottom in certain localities (as found by the Challenger expedition along the line of the Agulhas current) is really organic, and is composed of casts of the shells of Foraminifera. Long before these observations had been made, it had been shown by Professor Ehrenberg that the green sands of various geological formations are composed mainly of the internal casts of the shells of Foraminifera ; and * It has been asserted that the flints of the chalk are merely fossil sponges. No explanation of the origin of flint, however, can be satisfac- tory, unless it embraces the origin of chert in almost all great limestones from the Silurian upwards, as well as the common phenomenon of the silicification of organic bodies (such as corals and shells) which are known with certainty to have been originally calcareous. THE FOSSILIFEROUS ROCKS. 35 we have thus another and a very interesting example how rock- deposits of considerable extent and of geological importance can be built up by the operation of the minutest living beings. As regards argillaceous deposits, containing alumina or clay as their essential ingredient, it cannot be said that any of these have been actually shown to be of organic origin. A recent observation by Sir Wyville Thomson would, however, render it not improbable that some of the great argillaceous accumulations of past geological periods maybe really organic. This distinguished observer, during the cruise of the Chal- lenger, showed that the calcareous ooze which has been already spoken of as covering large areas of the floor of the Atlantic and Pacific at great depths, and which consists almost wholly of the shells of Foraminifera^ gave place at still greater depths to a red ooze consisting of impalpable clayey mud, coloured, by oxide of iron, and devoid of traces of organic bodies. As the existence of this widely-diffused red ooze, in mid-ocean, and at such great depths, cannot be explained on the supposition that it is a sediment brought down into the sea by rivers, Sir Wyville Thomson came to the conclusion that it was probably formed by the action of the sea-water upon the shells of Foraminifera. These shells, though mainly consisting of lime, also contain a certain proportion of alumina, the former being soluble in the carbonic acid dissolved in the sea-water, whilst the latter is insoluble. There would further appear to be grounds for believing that the solvent power of the sea -water over lime is considerably increased at great depths. If, therefore, we suppose the shells of Foraminifera to be in course of deposition over the floor of the Pacific, at certain depths they would remain unchanged, and would ac- cumulate to form a calcareous ooze; but at greater depths they would be acted upon by the water, their lime would be dis- solved out, their form would disappear, and we should simply have left the small amount of alumina which they previously contained. In process of time this alumina would accumulate to form a bed of clay; and as this clay had been directly derived from the decomposition of the shells of animals, it would be fairly entitled to be considered an organic deposit. Though not finally established, the hypothesis of Sir Wyville Thomson on this subject is of the greatest interest to the palae- ontologist, as possibly serving to explain the occurrence, espe- cially in the older formations, of great deposits of argillaceous matter which are entirely destitute of traces of life. It only remains, in this connection, to shortly consider the rock-deposits in which carbon is found to be present in greater 36 PRINCIPLES OF PALAEONTOLOGY. or less quantity. In the great majority of cases where rocks are found to contain carbon or carbonaceous matter, it can be stated with certainty that this substance is of organic origin, though it is not necessarily derived from vegetables. Carbon derived from the decomposition of animal bodies is not uncom- mon ; though it never occurs in such quantity from this source as it may do when it is derived from plants. Thus, many limestones are more or less highly bituminous ; the celebrated siliceous flags or so-called " bituminous schists " of Caithness are impregnated with oily matter apparently derived from the decomposition of the numerous fishes embedded in them ; Silurian shales containing Graptolites, but destitute of plants, are not uncommonly "anthracitic," and contain a small per- centage of carbon derived from the decay of these zoophytes ; whilst the petroleum so largely worked in North America has not improbably an animal origin. That the fatty compounds present in animal bodies should more or less extensively im- pregnate fossiliferous rock-masses, is only what might be ex- pected ; but the great bulk of the carbon which exists stored up in the earth's crust is derived from plants ; and the form in which it principally presents itself is that of coal. We shall have to speak again, and at greater length, of coal, and it is sufficient to say here that all the true coals, anthracites, and lignites, are of organic origin, and consist principally of the remains of plants in a more or less altered condition. The bituminous shales which are found so commonly associated with beds of coal also derive their carbon primarily from plants ; and the same is certainly, or probably, the case with similar shales which are known to occur in formations younger than the Carboniferous. Lastly, carbon may occur as a con- spicuous constituent of rock-masses in the form of graphite or black-lead. In this form, it occurs in the shape of detached scales, of veins or strings, or sometimes of regular layers;* and there can be little doubt that in many instances it has an organic origin, though this is not capable of direct proof. When present, at any rate, in quantity, and in the form of layers associated with stratified rocks, as is often the case in the Lau- rentian formation, there can be little hesitation in regarding it as of vegetable origin, and as an altered coal. * In the Huronian formation at Steel River, on the north shore of Lake Superior, there exists a bed of carbonaceous matter which is regularly in- terstratified with the surrounding rocks, and has a thickness of from 30 to 40 feet. This bed is shown by chemical analysis to contain about 50 per cent of carbon, partly in the form of graphite, partly in the form of anthra- cite ; and there can be little doubt but that it is really a stratum of "meta- morphic " coal. CHRONOLOGICAL SUCCESSION. 37 CHAPTER III. CHRONOLOGICAL SUCCESSION OF THE FOSSILIFEROUS ROCKS. The physical geologist, who deals with rocks simply as rocks, and who does not necessarily trouble himself about what fossils they may contain, finds that the stratified deposits which form so large a portion of the visible part of the earth's crust are not promiscuously heaped together, but that they have a cer- tain definite arrangement. In each country that he examines, he finds that certain groups of strata lie above certain other groups ; and in comparing different countries with one another, he finds that, in the main, the same groups of rocks are always found in the same relative position to each other. It is pos- sible, therefore, for the physical geologist to arrange the known stratified rocks into a successive series of groups, or " forma- tions," having a certain definite order. The establishment of this physical order amongst the rocks introduces, however, at once the element of time, and the physical succession of the strata can be converted directly into a historical or chronologi- cal succession. This is obvious, when we reflect that any bed or set of beds of sedimentary origin is clearly and necessarily younger than all the strata upon which it rests, and older than all those by which it is surmounted. It is possible, then, by an appeal to the rocks alone, to de- termine in each country the general physical succession of the strata, and this " stratigraphical " arrangement, when once de- termined, gives us the relative ages of the successive groups. The task, however, of the physical geologist in this matter is immensely lightened when he calls in palaeontology to his aid, and studies the evidence of the fossils embedded in the rocks. Not only is it thus much easier to determine the order of suc- cession of the strata in any given region, but it becomes now for the first time possible to compare, with certainty and pre- cision, the order of succession in one region with that which exists in other regions far distant. The value of fossils as tests of the relative ages of the sedimentary rocks depends on the fact that they are not indefinitely or promiscuously scattered through the crust of the earth, — as it is conceivable that they might be. On the contrary, the first and most firmly estab- lished law of Palaeontology is, that particular kinds of fossils 3# PRINCIPLES OF PALAEONTOLOGY. are confined to particular rocks, and particular groups of fossils are confined to particular groups of rocks. Fossils, then, are distinctive of the rocks in which they are found — much more distinctive, in fact, than the mere mineral character of the rock can be, for that commonly changes as a formation is traced from one region to another, whilst the fossils remain unaltered. It would therefore be quite possible for the palaeontologist, by an appeal to the fossils alone, to arrange the series of sedi- mentary deposits into a pile of strata having a certain definite order. Not only would this be possible, but it would be found — if sufficient knowledge had been brought to bear on both sides — that the palaeontological arrangement of the strata would coincide in its details with the stratigraphical or physical arrangement. Happily for science, there is no such division between the palaeontologist and the physical geologist as here supposed ; but by the combined researches of the two, it has been found possible to divide the entire series of stratified deposits into a number of definite rock -groups or formations, which have a recognised order of succession, and each of which is charac- terised by possessing an assemblage of organic remains which do not occur in association in any other formation. Such an assemblage of fossils, characteristic of any given formation, re- presents the life of the particular period in which the formation was deposited. In this way the past history of the earth becomes divided into a series of successive life-periods, each of which corresponds with the deposition of a particular forma- tion or group of strata. Whilst particular assemblages of organic forms characterise particular groups of rocks, it may be further said that, in a general way, each subdivision of each formation has its own peculiar fossils, by which it may be recognised by a skilled worker in Palaeontology. Whenever, for instance, we meet with examples of the fossils which are known as Graptolites, we may be sure that we are dealing with Silurian rocks (leaving out of sight one or two forms doubtfully referred to this family). We may, however, go much farther than this with perfect safety. If the Graptolites belong to certain genera, we may be quite certain that we are dealing with Lower Silurian rocks. Furthermore, if certain special forms are present, we may be even able to say to what exact subdivision of the Lower Silu- rian series they belong. As regards particular fossils, however, or even particular classes of fossils, conclusions of this nature require to be accom- panied by a tacit but well-understood reservation. So far as CHRONOLOGICAL SUCCESSION. 39 our present observation goes, none of the undoubted Grapto- lites have ever been discovered in rocks later than those known upon other grounds to be Silurian ; but it is possible that they might at any time be detected in younger deposits. Similarly, the species and genera which we now regard as characteristic of the Lower Silurian, may at some future time be found to have survived into the Upper Silurian period. We should not forget, therefore, in determining the age of strata by palaeonto- logical evidence, that we are always reasoning upon generalisa- tions which are the result of experience alone, and which are liable to be vitiated by further and additional discoveries. When the palaeontological evidence as to the age of any given set of strata is corroborated by the physical evidence, our conclusions may be regarded as almost certain ; but there are certain limitations and fallacies in the palaeontological method of inquiry which deserve a passing mention. In the first place, fossils are not always present in the stratified rocks ; many aqueous rocks are unfossiliferous, through a thickness of hundreds or even thousands of feet of little-altered sediments ; and even amongst beds which do contain fossils, we often meet with strata of many feet or yards in thickness which are wholly destitute of any traces of fossils. There are, therefore, to begin with, many cases in which there is no palaeontological evidence extant or available as to the age of a given group of strata. In the second place, palaeontological observers in different parts of the world are liable to give different names to the same fossil, and in all parts of the world they are occa- sionally liable to group together different fossils under the same title. Both these sources of fallacy require to be guarded against in reasoning as to the age of strata from their fossil remains. Thirdly, the mere fact of fossils being found in beds which are known by physical evidence to be of different ages, has commonly led palaeontologists to describe them as dif- ferent species. Thus, the same fossil, occurring in successive groups of strata, and with the merely trivial and varietal differ- ences due to the gradual change in its environment, has been repeatedly described as a distinct species, with a distinct name, in every bed in which it was found. We know, however, that many fossils range vertically through many groups of strata, and there are some which even pass through several forma- tions. The mere fact of a difference of physical position ought never to.be taken into account at all in considering and determining the true affinities of a fossil. Fourthly, the results of experience, instead of being an assistance, are some- times liable to operate as a source of error. When once, 40 PRINCIPLES OF PALEONTOLOGY. namely, a generalisation has been established that certain fossils occur in strata of a certain age, palaeontologists are apt to infer that all beds containing similar fossils must be of the same age. There is a presumption, of course, that this infer- ence would be correct ; but it is not a conclusion resting upon absolute necessity, and there might be physical evidence to disprove it. Fifthly, the physical geologist may lead the palae- ontologist astray by asserting that the physical evidence as to the age and position of a given group of beds is clear and un- equivocal, when such evidence may be, in reality, very slight and doubtful. In this way, the observer may be readily led into wrong conclusions as to the nature of the organic remains — often obscure and fragmentary — which it is his business to examine, or he may be led erroneously to think that previous generalisations as to the age of certain kinds of fossils are premature and incorrect. Lastly, there are cases in which, owing to the limited exposure of the beds, to their being merely of local development, or to other causes, the physical evidence as to the age of a given group of strata may be en- tirely uncertain and unreliable, and in which, therefore, the observer has to rely wholly upon the fossils which he may meet with. In spite of the above limitations and fallacies, there can be no doubt as to the enormous value of palaeontology in enab- ling us to work out the historical succession of the sedimentary rocks. It may even be said that in any case where there should appear to be a clear and decisive discordance between the physical and the palaeontological evidence as to the age of a given series of beds, it is the former that is to be distrusted rather than the latter. The records of geological science con- tain not a few cases in which apparently clear physical evi- dence of superposition has been demonstrated to have been wrongly interpreted ; but the evidence of palaeontology, when in any way sufficient, has rarely been upset by subsequent investigations. Should we find strata containing plants of the Coal-measures apparently resting upon other strata with Am- monites and Belemnites, we may be sure that the physical evidence is delusive ; and though the above is an extreme case, the presumption in all such instances is rather that the physical succession has been misunderstood or misconstrued, than that there has been a subversion of the recognised succession of life-forms. We have seen, then, that as the collective result of observa- tions made upon the superposition of rocks in different locali- ties, from their mineral characters, and from their included CHRONOLOGICAL SUCCESSION. 41 fossils, geologists have been able to divide the entire stratified series into a number of different divisions or formations, each characterised by a general uniformity of mineral composition, and by a special and peculiar assemblage of organic forms. Each of these primary groups is in turn divided into a series of smaller divisions, characterised and distinguished in 'the same way. It is not pretended for a moment that all these primary rock-groups can anywhere be seen surmounting one another regularly.* There is no region upon the earth where all the stratified formations can be seen together ; and, even when most of them occur in the same country, they can nowhere be seen all succeeding each other in their regular and uninterrupted succession. The reason of this is obvious. There are many places — to take a single example — where one may see the the Silurian rocks, the Devonian, and the Carbon- iferous rocks succeeding one another regularly, and in their proper order. This is because the particular region where this occurs was always submerged beneath the sea while these for- mations were being deposited. There are, however, many more localities in which one would find the Carboniferous rocks resting unconformably upon the Silurians without the intervention of any strata which could be referred to the Devonian period. This might arise from one of two causes : i. The Silurians might have been elevated above the sea im- mediately after their deposition, so as to form dry land during the whole of the Devonian period, in which case, of course, no strata of the latter age could possibly be deposited in that area. 2. The Devonian might have been deposited upon the Silurian, and then the whole might have been elevated above the sea, and subjected to an amount of denudation sufficient to remove the Devonian strata entirely. In this case, when the land was again submerged, the Carboniferous rocks, or any younger formation, might be deposited directly upon Silurian strata. From one or other of these causes, then, or from subse- quent disturbances and denudations, it happens that we can * As we have every reason to believe that dry land and sea have existed, at any rate from the commencement of the Lauremian period to the present day, it is quite obvious that no one of the great formations can ever, under any cir- cumstances, have extended over the entire globe. In other words, no one of the formations can ever have had a greater geographical extent than that of the seas of the period in which the formation was deposited. Nor is there any reason for thinking that the proportion of dry land to ocean has ever been materially different to what it is at present, however greatly the areas of sea and land may have changed as regards their place. It follows from the above, that there is no sufficient basis for the view that the crust of the earth is com- posed of a succession of concentric layers, like the coats of an onion, each layer representing one formation. 42 PRINCIPLES OF PALEONTOLOGY. rarely find many of the primary formations following one another consecutively and in their regular order. In no case, however, do we ever find the Devonian resting upon the Carboniferous, or the Silurian rocks reposing on the Devonian. We have therefore, by a comparison of many different areas, an established order of succession of the strati- fied formations, as shown in the subjoined ideal section of the crust of the earth (fig. 17). The main subdivisions of the stratified rocks are known by the following names : — 1. Laurentian. 2. Cambrian (with Huronian ?). 3. Silurian. 4. Devonian or Old Red Sandstone. 5. Carboniferous. 8. Jurassic or Oolitic. 9. Cretaceous. 10. Eocene. 11. Miocene. 12. Pliocene. 13. Post-tertiary. CHRONOLOGICAL SUCCESSION. 43 IDEAL SECTION OF THE CRUST OF THE EARTH. Fig. 17. Post-lertiary and Recent. Pliocene. Cretaceous. Oolitic or Jurassic. U Triassic. iferous. Devonian or Old Red Sandstone. Cambrian. Huronian. Laurentian. 44 PRINCIPLES OF PAL/EON TO LOGY. Of these primary rock divisions, the Laurentian, Cambrian, Silurian, Devonian, Carboniferous, and Permian are collec- tively grouped together under the name of the Primary or Palceozoic rocks (Gr. palaios, ancient; zoe, life). Not only do they constitute the oldest stratified accumulations, but from the extreme divergence between their animals and plants and those now in existence, they may appropriately be considered as belonging to an "Old-Life" period of the world's history. The Triassic, Jurassic, and Cretaceous systems are grouped to- gether as the Secondary or Mesozoic formations (Gr. mesos, inter- mediate ; zoe, life) ; the organic remains of this " Middle-Life " period being, on the whole, intermediate in their characters between those of the palaeozoic epoch and those of more modern strata. Lastly, the Eocene, Miocene, and Pliocene formations are grouped together as the Tertiary or Kainozoic rocks (Gr. kainos, new ; zoe, life) ; because they constitute a " New-Life" period, in which the organic remains approximate' in character to those now existing upon the globe. The so- called Post-Tertiary deposits are placed with the Kainozoic, or may be considered as forming a separate Quaternary system. CHAPTER IV. THE BREAKS IN THE GEOLOGICAL AND PAL&ONTOLOGICAL RECORD. The term " contemporaneous " is usually applied by geolo- gists to groups of strata in different regions which contain the same fossils, or an assemblage of fossils in which many iden- tical forms are present. That is to say, beds which contain identical, or nearly identical, fossils, however widely separated they may be from one another in point of actual distance, are ordinarily believed to have been deposited during the same period of the earth's history. This belief, indeed, constitutes the keystone of the entire system of determining the age of strata by their fossil contents; and if we take the word "con- temporaneous" in a general and strictly geological sense, this belief can be accepted as proved beyond denial. We must, however, guard ourselves against too literal an interpretation of the word " contemporaneous," and we must bear in mind the enormously - prolonged periods of time with which the geologist has to deal. When we say that two groups of strata BREAKS IN THE GEOLOGICAL RECORD. 45 in different regions are " contemporaneous," we simply mean that they were formed during the same geological period, and perhaps at different stages of that period, and we do not mean to imply that they were formed at precisely the same instant of time. A moment's consideration will show us that it is only in the former sense that we can properly speak of strata being " con- temporaneous ;" and that, in point of fact, beds containing the same fossils, if occurring in widely distant areas, can hardly be " contemporaneous " in any literal sense ; but that the very identity of their fossils is proof that they were deposited one after the other. If we find strata containing identical fossils within the limits of a single geographical region — say in Europe — then there is a reasonable probability that these beds are strictly contemporaneous, in the sense that they were deposited at the same time. There is a reasonable probability of this, because there is no improbability involved in the idea of an ocean occupying the whole area of Europe, and peopled throughout by many of the same species of marine animals. At the present day, for example, many identical species of animals are found living on the western coasts of Britain and the eastern coasts of North America, and beds now in course of deposition off the shores of Ireland and the seaboard of the state of New York would necessarily contain many of the same fossils. Such beds would be both literally and geologi- cally contemporaneous; but the case is different if the distance between the areas where the strata occur be greatly increased. We find, for example, beds containing identical fossils (the Quebec or Skiddaw beds) in Sweden, in the north of England, in Canada, and in Australia. Now, if all these beds were con- temporaneous, in the literal sense of the term, we should have to suppose that the ocean at one time extended uninterrup- tedly between all these points, and was peopled throughout the vast area thus indicated by many of the same animals. Nothing, however, that we see at the present day would justify us in imagining an ocean of such enormous extent, and at the same time so uniform in its depth, temperature, and other conditions of marine life, as to allow the same animals to flourish in it from end to end ; and the example chosen is only one of a long and ever-recurring series. It is therefore much more reasonable to explain this, and all similar cases, as owing to the migration of the fauna, in whole or in part, from one marine area to another. Thus, we may suppose an ocean to cover what is now the European area, and to be peopled by certain species of animals. Beds of sediment — clay, sands, and limestones — will be deposited over the sea-bottom, and 46 PRINCIPLES OF PALAEONTOLOGY. will entomb the remains of the animals as fossils. After this has lasted for a certain length of time, the European area may undergo elevation, or may become otherwise unsuitable for the perpetuation of its fauna ; the result of which would be that some or all of the marine animals of the area would migrate to some more suitable region. Sediments would then be accumu- lated in the new area to which they had betaken themselves, and they would then appear, for the second time, as fossils in a set of beds widely separated from Europe. The second set of beds would, however, obviously not be strictly or literally contemporaneous with the first, but would be separated from them by the period of time required for the migration of the animals from the one area into the other. It is only in a wide and comprehensive sense that such strata can be said to be contemporaneous. It is impossible to enter further into this subject here ; but it may be taken as certain that beds in widely remote geogra- phical areas can only come to contain the same fossils by reason of a migration having taken place of the animals of the one area to the other. That such migrations can and do take place is quite certain, and this is a much more reasonable explanation of the observed facts than the hypothesis that in former periods the conditions of life were much more uniform than they are at present, and that, consequently, the same organisms were able to range over the entire globe at the same time. It need only be added, that taking the evidence of the present as explaining the phenomena of the past — the only safe method of reasoning in geological matters — we have abundant proof that deposits which are actually contempo- raneous, in the strict sense of the term, do not contain the same, fossils, if far removed from one another in point of distance. Thus, deposits of various kinds are now in process of forma- tion in our existing seas, as, for example, in the Arctic Ocean, the Atlantic, and the Pacific, and many of these deposits are known to us by actual examination and observation with the sounding-lead and dredge. But it is hardly necessary to add that the animal remains contained in these deposits — the fossils of some future period — instead of being identical, are widely different from one another in their characters. We have seen, then, that the entire stratified series is capable of subdivision into a number of definite rock-groups or "forma- tions," each possessing a peculiar and characteristic assem- blage of fossils, representing the "life" of the "period" in which the formation was deposited. We have still to inquire shortly how it came to pass that two successive formations BREAKS IN THE GEOLOGICAL RECORD. 47 should thus be broadly distinguished by their life-forms, and why they should not rather possess at any rate a majority of identical fossils. It was originally supposed that this could be explained by the hypothesis that the close of each formation was accompanied by a general destruction of all the living beings of the period, and that the commencement of each new formation was signalised by the creation of a number of brand-new organisms, destined to figure as the characteristic fossils of the same. This theory, however, ignores the fact that each formation — as to which we have any sufficient evidence — contains a few, at least, of the life-forms which existed in the preceding period; and it invokes forces and processes of which we know nothing, and for the supposed action of which we cannot account. The problem is an un- deniably difficult one, and it will not be possible here to give more than a mere outline of the modern views upon the sub- ject. Without entering into the at present inscrutable question as to the manner in which new life-forms are introduced upon the earth, it may be stated that almost all modern geologists hold that the living beings of any given formation are in the main modified forms of others which have preceded them. It is not believed that any general or universal destruction of life took place at the termination of each geological period, or that a general introduction of new forms took place at the commencement of a new period. It is, on the contrary, believed that the animals and plants of any given period are for the most part (or exclusively) the lineal but modified descendants of the animals and plants of the immediately pre- ceding period, and that some of them, at any rate, are con- tinued into the next succeeding period, either unchanged, or so far altered as to appear as new species. To discuss these views in detail would lead us altogether too far. but there is one very obvious consideration which may advantageously receive some attention. It is obvious, namely, that the great discordance which is found to subsist between the animal life of any given formation and that of the next succeeding formation, and which no one denies, would be a fatal blow to the views just alluded to, unless admitting of some satisfactory explanation. Nor is this discordance one purely of life-forms, for there is often a physical break in the successions of strata as well. Let us therefore briefly consider how far these interruptions and breaks in the geological and palseonto- logical record can be accounted for, and still allow us to believe in some theory of continuity as opposed to the doc- trine of intermittent and occasional action. 48 PRINCIPLES OF PALAEONTOLOGY. In the first place, it is perfectly clear that if we admit the conception above mentioned of a continuity of life from the Laurentian period to the present day, we could never prove our view to be correct, unless we could produce in evidence fossil examples of all the kinds of animals and plants that have lived and died during that period. In order to do this, we should require, to begin with, to have access to an abso- lutely unbroken and perfect succession of all the deposits which have ever been laid down since the beginning. If, however, we ask the physical geologist if 'he is in possession of any such uninterrupted series, he will at once answer in the negative. So far from the geological series being a perfect one, it is interrupted by numerous gaps of unknown length, many of which we can never expect to fill up. Nor are the proofs of this far to seek. Apart from the facts that we have hitherto examined only a limited portion of the dry land, that nearly two-thirds of the entire area of the globe is inaccessible to geological investigation in consequence of its being covered by the sea, that many deposits can be shown to have been more or less completely destroyed subsequent to their depo- sition, and that there may be many areas in which living beings exist where no rock is in process of formation, we have the broad fact that rock-deposition only goes on to any extent in water, and that the earth must have always consisted partly of dry land and partly of water — at any rate, so far as any period of which we have geological knowledge is concerned. There must, therefore, always have existed, at some part or another of the earth's surface, areas where no deposition of rock was going on, and the proof of this is to be found in the well- known phenomenon of "unconformabUity? Whenever, namelv, deposition of sediment is continuously going on within the limits of a single ocean, the beds which are laid down succeed one another in uninterrupted and regular sequence. Such beds are said to be " conformable," and there are many rock- groups known where one may pass through fifteen or twenty thousand feet of strata without a break — indicating that the beds had been deposited in an area which remained continu- ously covered by the sea. On the other hand, we commonly find that there is no such regular succession when we pass from one great formation to another, but that, on the contrary, the younger formation rests " un con form ably," as it is called, either upon the formation immediately preceding it in point of time, or upon some still older one. The essential physical feature of this unconformability is that the beds of the younger formation rest upon a worn and eroded surface formed by the BREAKS IN THE GEOLOGICAL RECORD. 49 beds of the older series (fig. 18); and a moment's considera- tion will show us what this indicates. It indicates, beyond Fig. 18.— Section showing strata of Tertiary age ( in which animals in themselves completely soft-bodied are never- theless able to leave marks by which their former presence can be detected. Thus every geologist is familiar with the wind- ing and twisting " trails " formed on the surface of the strata by sea -worms; and the impressions left by the stranded carcases of Jelly-fishes on the fine-grained lithographic slates of Solenhofen supply us with an example of how a creature which is little more than "organised sea -water" may still make an abiding mark upon the sands of time. As a general rule, however, animals which have no skeletons are incapable of being preserved as fossils, and hence there must always have been a vast number of different kinds of marine animals of which we have absolutely no record whatever. Again, almost all the fossiliferous rocks have been laid down in water; and it is a necessary result of this that the great majority of fossils are the remains of aquatic animals. The remains of air-breathing animals, whether of the inhabitants of the land or of the air itself, are comparatively rare as fossils, and the record of the past existence of these is much more imperfect than is the case with animals living in water. Moreover, the fossiliferous deposits are not only almost exclusively aqueous formations, but the great 'majority are marine, and only a com- paratively small number have been formed by lakes and rivers. It follows from the foregoing that the pal aeon tological record is fullest and most complete so far as sea-animals are concerned, though even here we find enormous gaps, owing to the absence of hard structures in many great groups ; of animals inhabiting fresh waters our knowledge is rendered still further incomplete by the small proportion that fluviatile and lacustrine deposits bear to marine ; whilst we have only a fragmentary acquaint- ance with the air-breathing animals which inhabited the earth during past ages. Lastly, the imperfection of the palasontological record, due BREAKS IN THE GEOLOGICAL RECORD. 51 to the causes above enumerated, is greatly aggravated, especi- ally as regards the earlier portion of the earth's history, by the fact that many rocks which contained fossils when deposited have since been rendered barren of organic remains. The principal cause of this common phenomenon is what is known as " metamorphism " — that is, the subjection of the rock to a sufficient amount of heat to cause a rearrangement of its par- ticles. When at all of a pronounced character, the result of metamorphic action is invariably the obliteration of any fossils which might have been originally present in the rock. Meta- morphism may affect rocks of any age, though naturally more prevalent in the older rocks, and to this cause must be set down an irreparable loss of much fossil evidence. The most striking example which is to be found of this is the great Lau- rentian series, which comprises some 30,000 feet of highly- metamorphosed sediments, but which, with one not wholly undisputed exception, has as yet yielded no remains of living beings, though there is strong evidence of the former existence in it of fossils. Upon the whole, then, we cannot doubt that the earth's crust, so far as yet deciphered by us, presents us with but a very imperfect record of the past. Whether the known and admitted imperfections of the geological and palaeontological records are sufficiently serious to account satisfactorily for the deficiency of direct evidence recognisable in some modern hypotheses, may be a matter of individual opinion. There can, however, be little doubt that they are sufficiently extensive to throw the balance of evidence decisively in favour of some theory of continuity, as opposed to any theory of intermittent and occasional action. The apparent breaks which divide the great series of the stratified rocks into a number of isolated formations, are not marks of mighty and general convulsions of nature, but are simply indications of the imperfection of our knowledge. Never, in all probability, shall we be able to point to a complete series of deposits, or a complete succession of life linking one great geological period to another. Never- theless, we may well feel sure that such deposits and such an unbroken succession must have existed at one time. We are compelled to believe that nowhere in the long series of the fossiliferous rocks has there been a total break, but that there must have been a complete continuity of life, and a more or less complete continuity of sedimentation, from the Laurentian period to the present day. One generation hands on the lamp of life to the next, and each system of rocks is the direct offspring of those which preceded it in time. Though there 52 PRINCIPLES OF PALAEONTOLOGY. has not been continuity in any given area, still the geological chain could never have been snapped at one point, and taken up again at a totally different one. Thus we arrive at the conviction that continuity is the fundamental law of geology, as it is of the other sciences, and that the lines of demarca- tion between the great formations are but gaps in our own knowledge. CHAPTER V. CONCLUSIONS TO BE DRAWN FROM FOSSILS. We have already seen that geologists have been led by the study of fossils to the all-important generalisation that the vast series of the Fossiliferous or Sedimentary Rocks may be divided into a number of definite groups or " formations," each of which is characterised by its organic remains. It may simply be repeated here that these formations are not properly and strictly characterised by the occurrence in them of any one particular fossil. It may be that a formation contains some particular fossil or fossils not occurring out of that formation, and that in this way an observer may identify a given group with tolerable certainty. It very often happens, indeed, that some particular stratum, or sub-group of a series, contains peculiar fossils, by which its existence may be deter- mined in various localities. As before remarked, however, the great formations are characterised properly by the association of certain fossils, by the predominance of certain families or orders, or by an assemblage of fossil remains representing the " life " of the period in which the formation was deposited. Fossils, then, enable us to determine the age of the deposits in which they occur. Fossils further enable us to come to very important conclusions as to the mode in which the fossil- iferous bed was deposited, and thus as to the condition of the particular district or region occupied by the fossiliferous bed at the time of the formation of the latter. If, in the first place, the bed contain the remains of animals such as now inhabit rivers, we know that it is " fluviatile" in its origin, and that it must at one time have either formed an actual river- bed, or been deposited by the overflowing of an ancient stream. Secondly, if the bed contain the remains of shell- fish, minute crustaceans, or fish, such as now inhabit lakes, CONCLUSIONS TO BE DRAWN FROM FOSSILS. 53 we know that it is " lacustrine," and was deposited beneath the waters of a former lake. Thirdly, if the bed contain the remains of animals such as now people the ocean, we know that it is " marine " in its origin, and that it is a fragment of an old sea-bottom. We can, however, often determine the conditions under which a bed was deposited with greater accuracy than this. If, for example, the fossils are of kinds resembling the marine animals now inhabiting shallow waters, if they are accompanied by the detached relics of terrestrial organisms, or if they are partially rolled and broken, we may conclude that the lossil- iferous deposit was laid down in a shallow sea, in the immediate vicinity of a coast-line, or as an actual shore-deposit. If, again, the remains are those of animals such as now live in the deeper parts of the ocean, and there is a very sparing intermixture of extraneous fossils (such as the bones of birds or quadrupeds, or the remains of plants), we may presume that the deposit is one of deep water. In other cases, we may find, scattered through the rock, and still in their natural position, the valves of shells such as we know at the present day as living buried in the sand or mud of the sea- shore or of estuaries. In other cases, the bed may obviously have been an ancient coral-reef, or an accumulation of social shells, like Oysters. Lastly, if we find the deposit to contain the remains of marine shells, but that these are dwarfed of their fair proportions and distorted in figure, we may conclude that it was laid down in a brackish sea, such as the Baltic, in which the proper saltness was want- ing, owing to its receiving an excessive supply of fresh water. In the preceding, we have been dealing simply with the remains of aquatic animals, and we have seen that certain con- clusions can be accurately reached by an examination of these. As regards the determination of the conditions of deposition from the remains of aerial and terrestrial animals, or from plants, there is not such an absolute certainty. The remains of land-animals would, of course, occur in " sub-aerial " deposits — that is, in beds, like blown sand, accumulated upon the land. Most of the remains of land-animals, Tiowever, are found in deposits which have been laid down in water, and they owe their present position to the fact that their former owners were drowned in rivers or lakes, or carried out to sea by streams. Birds, Flying Reptiles, and Flying Mammals might also simi- larly find their way into aqueous deposits ; but it is to be re- membered that many birds and mammals habitually spend a great part of their time in the water, and that these might there- fore be naturally expected to present themselves as fossils in 54 PRINCIPLES PALEONTOLOGY. Sedimentary Rocks. Plants, again, even when undoubtedly such as must have grown on land, do not prove that the bed in which they occur was formed on land. Many of the remains of plants known to us are extraneous to the bed in which they are now found, having reached their present site by falling into Likes or rivers, or being carried out to sea by floods or gales of wind. There are, however, many cases in which plants have undoubtedly grown on the very spot where we now find them. Thus it is now generally admitted that the great coal-fields of the Carboniferous age are the result of the growth in situ of the plants which compose coal, and that these grew on vast marshy or partially submerged tracts of level alluvial land. We have, however, distinct evidence of old land-surfaces, both in the Coal-measures and in other cases (as, for instance, in the well-known "dirt- bed " of the Purbeck series). When, for example, we find the erect stumps of trees standing at right angles to the surrounding strata, we know that the surface through which these send their roots was at one time the surface of the dry land, or, in other words, was an ancient soil (fig. 19). In many cases fossils en- able us to come to important conclusions as to the climate of the period in which they lived, but only a few in- stances of this can be here adduced. As fossils in the majority of instances are the re- mains of marine animals, it is mostly the temperature of the sea which can alone be determined in this way; and it is import- ant to remember that, owing to the existence of heated currents, the marine climate of a given area does not necessarily imply a correspondingly warm climate in the neighbouring land. Land- climates can only be determined by the remains of land-ani- mals or land-plants, and these are comparatively rare as fossils. It is also important to remember that all conclusions on this Fig. 19.— Erect Tree containing Reptilian remains. Coal-measures, Nova Scotia. (After Dawsoa.) CONCLUSIONS TO BE DRAWN FROM FOSSILS. 55 head are really based upon the present distribution of animal and vegetable life on the globe, and are therefore liable to be vitiated by the following considerations : — a. Most fossils are extinct, and it is not certain that the habits and requirements of any extinct animal were exactly similar to those of its nearest living relative. b. When we get very far back in time, we meet with groups of organisms so unlike anything we know at the present day as to render all conjectures as to climate founded upon their sup- posed habits more or less uncertain and unsafe. c. In the case of marine animals, we are as yet very far from knowing the exact limits of distribution of many species within our present seas ; so that conclusions drawn from living forms as to extinct species are apt to prove incorrect. For instance, it has recently been shown that many shells formerly believed to be confined to the Arctic Seas have, by reason of the ex- tension of Polar currents, a wide range to the south ; and this has thrown doubt upon the conclusions drawn from fossil shells as to the Arctic conditions under which certain beds were supposed to have been deposited. d. The distribution of animals at the present day is certainly dependent upon other conditions beside climate alone ; and the causes which now limit the range of given animals are certainly such as belong to the existing order of things. But the establishment of the present order of things does not date back in many cases to the introduction of the present species of animals. Even in the case, therefore, of existing species of animals, it can often be shown that the past distribution of the species was different formerly to what it is now, not necessarily because the climate has changed, but because of the alteration of other conditions essential to the life of the species or con- ducing to its extension. Still, we are in many cases able to draw completely reliable conclusions as to the climate of a given geological period, by an examination of the fossils belonging to that period. Among the more striking examples of how the past climate of a region may be deduced from the study of the organic remains con- tained in its rocks, the following may be mentioned : It has been shown that in Eocene times, or at the commencement of the Tertiary period, the climate of what is now Western Europe was of a tropical or sub-tropical character. Thus the Eocene beds are found to contain the remains of shells such as now inhabit tropical seas, as, for example, Cowries and Volutes ; and with these are the fruits of palms, and the remains of other tropical plants. It has been shown, again, 56 PRINCIPLES OF PALEONTOLOGY. that in Miocene times, or about the middle of the Tertiary period, Central Europe was peopled with a luxuriant flora resembling that of the warmer parts of the United States, and leading to the conclusion that the mean annual temperature must have been at least 30° hotter than it is at present. It has been shown that, at the same time, Greenland, now buried beneath a vast ice-shroud, was warm enough to support a large number of trees, shrubs, and other plants, such as inhabit the temperate regions of the globe. Lastly, it has been shown, upon physical as well as pal3eontological evidence, that the greater part of the North Temperate Zone, at a comparatively recent geological period, has been visited with all the rigours of an Arctic climate, resembling that of Greenland at the pre- sent day. This is indicated by the occurrence of Arctic shells in the superficial deposits of this period, whilst the Musk-ox and the Reindeer roamed far south of their present limits. Lastly, it was from the study of fossils that geologists learnt originally to comprehend a fact which may be regarded as of cardinal importance in all modern geological theories and speculations — namely, that the crust of the earth is liable to local elevations and subsidences. For long after the remains of shells and other marine animals were for the first time ob- served in the solid rocks forming the dry land, and at great heights above the sea-level, attempts were made to explain this almost unintelligible phenomenon upon the hypothesis that the fossils in question were not really the objects they repre- sented, but were in truth mere lusus natures, due to some "plastic virtue la'ent in the earth." The common-sense of scientific men, however, soon rejected this idea, and it was agreed by universal consent that these bodies really were the remains of animals which formerly lived in the sea. When once this was admitted, the further steps were comparatively easy, and at the present day no geological doctrine stands on a firmer basis than that which teaches us that our present con- tinents and islands, fixed and immovable as they appear, have been repeatedly sunk beneath the ocean. THE BIOLOGICAL RELATIONS OF FOSSILS. 5/ CHAPTER VI. THE BIOLOGICAL RELATIONS OF FOSSILS. Not only have fossils, as \ve have seen, a most important bearing upon the sciences of Geology and Physical Geography, but they have relations of the most complicated and weighty character with the numerous problems connected with the study of living beings, or in other words, with the science of Biology. To such an extent is this the case, that no adequate comprehension of Zoology and Botany, in their modern form, is so much as possible without some acquaintance with the types of animals and plants which have passed away. There are also numerous speculative questions in the domain of vital science, which, if soluble at all, can only hope to find their key in researches carried out on extinct organisms. To discuss fully the biological relations of fossils would, there- fore, afford matter for a separate treatise ; and all that can be done here is to indicate very cursorily the principal points to which the attention of the palseontological student ought to be directed. In the first place, the great majority of fossil animals and plants are " extinct " — that is to say, they belong to species which are no longer in existence at the present day. So far, however, from there being any truth in the old view that there were periodic destructions of all the living beings in existence upon the earth, followed by a corresponding number of new creations of animals and plants, the actual facts of the case show that the extinction of old forms and the introduction of new forms have been processes constantly going on throughout the whole of geological time. Every species seems to come into being at a certain definite point of time, and to finally dis- appear at another definite point ; though there are few in- stances indeed, if there are any, in which our present know- ledge would permit us safely to fix with precision the times of entrance and exit. There are, moreover, marked differences in the actual time during which different species remained in existence, and therefore corresponding differences in their "vertical range," or, in other words, in the actual amount and thickness of strata through which they present themselves as fossils. Some species are found to range through two or even three formations, and a few have an even more extended life. More commonly the species which begin in the commence- 58 PRINCIPLES OF PALEONTOLOGY. ment of a great formation die out at or before its close, whilst those which are introduced for the first time near the middle or end of the formation may either become extinct, or may pass on into the next succeeding formation. As a general rule, it is the animals which have the lowest and simplest organisation that have the longest range in time, and the additional possession of microscopic or minute dimensions seems also to favour longevity. Thus some of the Forami- nifera appear to have survived, with little or no perceptible alteration, from the Silurian period to the present day ; whereas large and highly-organised animals, though long-lived as indi- viduals, rarely seem to live long specifically, and have, there- fore, usually a restricted vertical range. Exceptions to this, however, are occasionally to be found in some "persistent types," which extend through a succession of geological periods with very little modification. Thus the existing Lampshells of the genus Lingula are little changed from the Lingulce which swarmed in the Lower Silurian seas ; and the existing Pearly Nautilus is the last descendant of a clan nearly as ancient. On the other hand, some forms are singu- larly restricted in their limits, and seem to have enjoyed a comparatively brief lease of life. An example of this is to be found in many of the Ammonites — close allies of the Nau- tilus— which are often confined strictly to certain zones of strata, in some cases of very insignificant thickness. Of the causes of extinction amongst fossil animals and plants, we know little or nothing. All we can say is, that the attributes which constitute a species do not seem to be intrin- sically endowed with permanence, any more than the attri- butes which constitute an individual, though the former may endure whilst many successive generations of the latter have disappeared. Each species appears to have its own life- period, its commencement, its culmination, and its gradual decay ; and the life-periods of different species may be of very different duration. Erom what has been said above, it may be gathered that our existing species of animals and plants are, for the most part, quite of modem origin, using the term '-modern '; in its geological acceptation. Measured by human standards, the majority of existing animals (which are capable of being preserved as fossils) are known to have a high antiquity ; and some of them can boast of a pedigree which even the geologist may regard with respect. Not a few of our shell- fish are known to have commenced their existence at some point of the Tertiary period; one Lampshell (Tcrcbratulina THE BIOLOGICAL RELATIONS OI< FOSSILS. 59 caput-strpeiitis) is believed to have survived since the Chalk ; and some of the Foraminifera date, at any rate, from the Carboniferous period. We learn from this the additional fact that our existing animals and plants do not constitute an assemblage of organic forms which were introduced into the world collectively and simultaneously, but that they com- menced their existence at very different periods, some being extremely old, whilst others may be regarded as compara- tively recent animals. And this introduction of the existing fauna and flora was a slow and gradual process, as shown admirably by the study of the fossil shells of the Tertiaiy period. Thus, in the earlier Tertiary period, we find about 95 per cent of the known fossil shells to be species that are no longer in existence, the remaining 5 per cent being forms which are known to live in our present seas. In the middle of the Tertiary period we find many more recent and still existing species of shells, and the extinct types are much fewer in number; and this gradual introduction of forms now living goes on steadily, till, at the close of the Ter- tiary period, the proportions with which we started may be reversed, as many as 90 or 95 per cent of the fossil shells being forms still alive, while not more than 5 per cent may have disappeared. All known animals at the present day may be divided into some five or six primary divisions, which are known technically as " sub-kingdoms" Each of these sub-kingdoms* may be regarded as representing a certain type or plan of structure, and all the animals comprised in each are merely modified forms of this common type. Not only are all known living animals thus reducible to some five or six fundamental plans of struc- ture, but amongst the vast series of fossil forms no one has yet been found — however unlike any existing animal — to possess peculiarities which would entitle it to be placed in a new sub-kingdom. All fossil animals, therefore, are capable of being referred to one or other of the primary divisions of the animal kingdom. Many fossil groups have no closely- related group now in existence ; but in no case do we meet with any grand structural type which has not survived to the present day. The old types of life differ in many respects from those now upon the earth ; and the further back we pass in time, the more marked does this divergence become. Thus, if we were to compare the animals which lived in the Silurian seas with * In the Appendix a brief definition is given of the sub-kingdoms, and the chief divisions of each are enumerated. 60 PRINCIPLES OF PALAEONTOLOGY. those inhabiting our present oceans, we should in most in- stances find differences so great as almost to place us in another world. This divergence is the most marked in the Palaeozoic forms of life, less so in those of the Mesozoic period, and less still in the Tertiary period. Each successive formation has therefore presented us with animals becoming gradually more and more like those now in existence ; and though there is an immense and striking difference between the Silurian animals and those of to-day, this difference is greatly reduced if we compare the Silurian fauna with the Devonian ; that again with the Carboniferous \ and so on till we reach the present. It follows from the above that the animals of any given formation are more like those of the next formation below, and of the next formation above, than they are to any others ; and this fact of itself is an almost inexplicable one, unless we believe that the animals of any given formation are, in part at any rate, the lineal descendants of the animals of the preced- ing formation, and the progenitors, also in part at least, of the animals of the succeeding formation. In fact, the palaeon- tologist is so commonly confronted with the phenomenon of closely-allied forms of animal life succeeding one another in point of time, that he is compelled to believe that such forms have been developed from some common ancestral type by some process of "evolution" On the other hand, there are many phenomena, such as the apparently sudden introduction of new forms throughout all past time, and the common occur- rence of wholly isolated types, which cannot be explained in this way. Whilst it seems certain, therefore, that many of the phenomena of the succession of animal life in past periods can only be explained by some law of evolution, it seems at the same time certain that there has always been some other deeper and higher law at work, on -the nature of which it would be futile to speculate at present. Not only do we find that the animals of each successive formation become gradually more and more like those now existing upon the globe, as we pass from the older rocks into the newer, but we also find that there has been a gradual pro- gression and development in the types of animal life which characterise the geological ages. If we take the earliest-known and oldest examples of any given group of animals, it can sometimes be shown that these primitive forms, though in themselves highly organised, possessed certain characters such as are now only seen in \\\Q young of their existing representa- tives. In technical language, the early forms of life in some THE BIOLOGICAL RELATIONS OF FOSSILS. 6 1 instances possess "embryonic" characters, though this does not prevent them often attaining a size much more gigantic than their nearest living relatives. Moreover, the ancient forms of life are often what is called " comprehensive types " —that is to say, they possess characters in combination such as we nowadays only find separately developed in different groups of animals. Now, this permanent retention of embry- onic characters and this "comprehensiveness" of structural type are signs of what a zoologist considers to be a compara- tively low grade of organisation ; and the prevalence of these features in the earlier forms of animals is a very striking phe- nomenon, though they are none the less perfectly organised so far as their own type is concerned. As we pass upwards in the geological scale, we find that these features gradually dis- appear, higher and ever higher forms are introduced, and " specialisation " of type takes the place of the former com- prehensiveness. We shall have occasion to notice many of the facts on which these views are based at a later period, and in connection with actual examples. In the meanwhile, it is sufficient to state, as a widely-accepted generalisation of palae- ontology, that there has been in the past a general progression of organic types, and that the appearance of the lower forms of life has in the main preceded that of the higher forms in point of time. PART II. HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. PART II. CHAPTER VII. THE LAURENTIAN AND HURONIAN PERIODS. THE Laurentian Rocks constitute the base of the entire strati- fied series, and are, therefore, the oldest sediments of which we have as yet any knowledge. They are more largely and more typically developed in North America, and especially in Canada, than in any known part of the world, and they derive their title from the range of hills which the old French geo- graphers named the " Laurentides." These hills are com- posed of Laurentian Rocks, and form the watershed between the valley of the St Lawrence river on the one hand, and the great plains which stretch northwards to Hudson Bay on the other hand. The main area of these ancient deposits forms a great belt of rugged and undulating country, which extends from Labrador westwards to Lake Superior, and then bends northwards towards the Arctic Sea. Throughout this extensive area the Laurentian Rocks for the most part present themselves in the form of low, rounded, ice-worn hills, which, if generally wanting in actual sublimity, have a certain geological grandeur from the fact that they "have endured the battles and the storms of time longer than any other mountains" (Dawson). In some places, however, the Laurentian Rocks produce scenery of the most magnificent character, as in the great gorge cut through them by the river Saguenay, where they rise at times into ver- tical precipices 1500 feet in height. In the famous group of the Adirondack mountains, also, in the state of New York, they form elevations no less than 6000 feet above the level of the sea. As a general rule, the character of the Laurentian region is that of a rugged, rocky, rolling country, often densely 66 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. timbered, but rarely well fitted for agriculture, and chiefly attractive to the hunter and the miner. As regards its mineral characters, the Laurentian series is composed throughout of metamorphic and highly crystalline rocks, which are in a high degree crumpled, folded, and faulted. By the late Sir William Logan the entire series was divided into two great groups, the Lower Laurentian and the Upper Laurentian, of which the latter rests unconformably upon the truncated edges of the former, and is in turn uncon- formably overlaid by strata of Huronian and Cambrian age (fig. 20). The Loiver Laurentian series attains the enormous thickness of a b Fig. 20. — Diagrammatic section of the Laurentian Rocks in Lower Canada, a Lower Laurentian ; b Upper Laurentian, resting unconformably upon the lower series ; c Cam- brian strata (Potsdam Sandstone), resting unconformably on the Upper Laurrentian. over 20,000 feet, and is composed mainly of great beds of gneiss, altered sandstones (quartzites), mica-schist, hornblende-schist, magnetic iron-ore, and haematite, together with masses of lime- stone. The limestones are especially interesting, and have an extraordinary development — three principal beds being known, of which one is not less than 1500 feet thick; the collective thickness of the whole being about 3500 feet. The Upper Laurentian series, as before said, reposes uncon- formably upon the Lower Laurentian, and attains a thickness of at least 10,000 feet. Like the preceding, it is wholly meta- morphic, and is composed partly of masses of gneiss and quartz- ite ; but it is especially distinguished by the possession of great beds of felspathic rock, consisting principally of " Labrador felspar." Though typically developed in the great Canadian area already spoken of, the Laurentian Rocks occur in other locali- ties, both in America and in the Old World. In Britain, the so-called " fundamental gneiss " of the Hebrides and of Suther- landshire is probably of Lower Laurentian age, and the " hy- persthene rocks " of the Isle of Skye may, with great proba- bility, be regarded as referable to the Upper Laurentian. In other localities in Great Britain (as in St David's, South Wales ; the Malvern Hills ; and the North of Ireland) occur ancient metamorphic deposits which also are probably refer- able to the Laurentian series. The so-called " primitive gneiss" of Norway appears to belong to the Laurentian, and the THE LAURENTIAN AND HURONIAN PERIODS. 6/ ancient metamorphic rocks of Bohemia and Bavaria may be regarded as being approximately of the same age. By some geological writers the ancient and highly meta- morphosed sediments of the Laurentian and the succeeding Huronian series have been spoken of as the " Azoic rocks " (Gr. a, without ; zoe, life) ; but even if we were wholly destitute of any evidence of life during these periods, this name would be objectionable upon theoretical grounds. If a general name be needed, that of " Eozoic " (Gr. eos, dawn ; zoe, life), proposed by Principal Dawson, is the most appropriate. Owing to their metamorphic condition, geologists long despaired of ever de- tecting any traces of life in the vast pile of strata which con- stitute the Laurentian System. Even before any direct traces were discovered, it was, however, pointed out that there were good reasons for believing that the Laurentian seas had been tenanted by an abundance of living beings. These reasons are briefly as follows : — (i) Firstly, the Laurentian series con- sists, beyond question, of marine sediments which originally differed in no essential respect from those which were subse- quently laid down in the Cambrian or Silurian periods. (2) In all formations later than the Laurentian, any limestones which are present can be shown, with few exceptions, to be organic rocks, and to be more or less largely made up of the comminuted debris of marine or fresh- water animals. The Laurentian limestones, in consequence of the metamorphism to which they have been subjected, are so highly crystalline (fig. 21) that the microscope fails to detect any organic struc- ture in the rock, and no fos- sils beyond those which will be spoken of immediately have as yet been discovered in them. We know, however, of numerous cases in which lime- stones, of later age, and un- doubtedly organic to begin with, have been rendered so intensely crystalline by meta- morphic action that all traces of organic structure have been obliterated. We have there- fore, by analogy, the strongest possible ground for believing that the vast beds of Lauren- tian limestone have been ori- ginally organic in their origin, and primitively composed, in the main, of the calcareous skele- Fig. 21. — Section of Lower Laurentian Limestone from Hull, Ottawa; enlarged five diameters. The rock is very highly crystalline, and contains mica and other minerals. The irregular black masses in it are graphite. (Original.) 68 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. tons of marine animals. It woiiid, in fact, be a matter of great difficulty to account for the formation of these great cal- careous masses on any other hypothesis. (3) The occurrence of phosphate of lime in the Laurentian Rocks in great abundance, and sometimes in the form of irregular beds, may very possibly be connected with the former existence in the strata of the re- mains of marine animals of whose skeleton this mineral is a con- stituent. (4) The Laurentian Rocks contain a vast amount of carbon in the form of black-lead or graphite. This mineral is especially abundant in the limestones, occurring in regular beds, in veins or strings, or disseminated through the body of the lime- stone in the shape of crystals, scales, or irregular masses. The amount of graphite in some parts of the Lower Laurentian is so great that it has been calculated as equal to the quantity of carbon present in an equal thickness of the Coal-measures. The general source of solid carbon in the crust of the earth is, however, plant-life; and it seems impossible to account for the Laurentian graphite, except upon the supposition that it is metamorphosed vegetable matter. (5) Lastly, the great beds of iron-ore (peroxide and magnetic oxide) which occur in the Laurentian series interstratified with the other rocks, point with great probability to the action of vegetable life; since similar deposits in later formations can commonly be shown to have been formed by the deoxidising power of vege- table matter in a state of decay. In the words of Principal Dawson, " any one of these rea- sons might, in itself, be held insufficient to prove so great and, at first sight, unlikely a conclusion as that of the existence of abundant animal and vegetable life in the Laurentian ; but the concurrence of the whole in a series of deposits unquestion- ably marine, forms a chain of evidence so powerful that it might command belief even if no fragment of any organic or living form or structure had ever been recognised in these an- cient rocks." Of late years, however, there have been dis- covered in the Laurentian Rocks certain bodies which are believed to be truly the remains of animals, and of which by far the most important is the structure known under the now celebrated name of Eozoon. If truly organic, a very special and exceptional interest attaches itself to Eozoon, as being the most ancient fossil animal of which we have any knowledge ; but there are some who regard it really a peculiar form of mineral structure, and a severe, protracted, and still unfinished controversy has been carried on as to its nature. Into this controversy it is wholly unnecessary to enter here ; and it will be sufficient to briefly explain the structure of Eozob'n, as eluci- dated by the elaborate and masterly investigations of Car- THE LAURENTIAN AND HURONIAN PERIODS. 69 penter and Dawson, from the standpoint that it is a genuine organism — the balance of evidence up to this moment inclin- ing decisively to this view. The structure known as Eozoon is found in various localities in the Lower Laurentian limestones of Canada, in the form of isolated masses or spreading layers, which are composed of thin alternating laminae, arranged more or less concentrically (fig. 22). The laminae of these masses are usually of different Fig. 22. — Fragment of Eozoon, of the natural size, showing alternate laminie ot loganite and dolomite. (After Dawson.) colours and composition ; one series being white, and com- posed of carbonate of lime — whilst the laminae of the second series alternate with the preceding, are green in colour, and are found by chemical analysis to consist of some silicate, generally serpentine or the closely-related " loganite." In some instances, however, all the laminae are calcareous, the concentric arrangement still remaining visible in consequence of the fact that the laminae are composed alternately of lighter and darker coloured limestone. When first discovered, the masses of Eozoon were supposed to be of a mineral nature ; but their striking general resem- blance to the undoubted fossils which will be subsequently spoken of under the name of Stromatopora was recognised by Sir William Logan, and specimens were submitted for minute examination, first to Principal Dawson, and subsequently to Dr W. B. Carpenter. After a careful microscopic examina- tion, these two distinguished observers came to the conclusion that Eozoon was truly organic, and in this opinion they were afterwards corroborated by other high authorities (Mr W. K. Parker, Profesor Rupert Jones, Mr H. B. Brady, Professor Giimbel, &c.) Stated briefly, the structure of Eozoon, as ex- hibited by the microscope, is as follows : — HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. ... b Fig. 23. — Diagram of a portion of Eozoon cut verti- cally. A, B, C, Three tiers of chambers communicating with one another by slightly constricted apertures : a a, The true shell-wall, perforated by numerous delicate tubes; b b, The main calcareous skeleton ("intermedi- ate skeleton"); c, Passage of communication (" stolon- passage ") from one tier of chambers to another ; homenafilitexta, Trenton and Cincinnati Groups, America ; c, Orthis testudinaria, Caradoc, Europe, and America; d, d ', Orthis plicatella, Cincinnati Group, America ; e, e'. e", Leptiena sericen, Llandeilo and Caradoc, Europe and Ame- rica. (After Meek, Hall, and the Author.) the Brachiopods) of unequal sizes, generally more or less con- vex, and marked with radiating ribs or lines. The valves of the shell are united to one another by teeth and sockets, and there is a straight hinge-line. The beaks are also separated by a distinct space ("hinge-area"), formed in part by each valve, which is perforated by a triangular opening, through which, in the living condition, passed a muscular cord attach- ing the shell to some foreign object. The genus Strophomena (fig. 50, d, and 51, a and It) is very like Orthis in general char- acter ; but the shell is usually much flatter, one or other valve often being concave, the hinge-line is longer, and the aperture for the emission of the stalk of attachment is partially closed by a calcareous plate. In Lepttcna, again (fig. 51, e), the shell is like Stroph&tnena in many respects, but generally compara- tively longer, often completely semicircular, and having one valve convex and the other valve concave. Amongst other genera of Brachiopods which are largely represented in the Lower Silurian rocks may be mentioned Lingula, Cranr, Discina, Trematis, Siphonotreta, Acrotreta, Rhynchondla, and Athyris ; but none of these can claim the importance to which the three previously-mentioned groups are entitled. The remaining Lower Silurian groups of Mollusca can be but briefly glanced at here. The Bivalves (Lamellibranchiata) find numerous representatives, belonging to such genera as THE LOWER SILURIAN PERIOD. Ill Modiolopsis, Ctenodonta; Orthonota, Palaarca, Lyrodesma, Am- bonychia, and Cleidophorus. The Univalves (Gasteropoda) are also very numerous, the two most important genera being Murchisonia(^. 52) and Pleurotomaria. In both these groups the outer lip of the shell is notched ; but the shell in the former is elongated and turreted, whilst in the latter it is depressed. The curious oceanic Univalves known as the Heteropods are also very abundant, the principal forms belonging to Bel- lerophon and Madurea. In the former (fig. 53) there is a symmetrical convoluted shell, like that of the Pearly Nautilus in shape, but without any internal partitions, and having the aperture of- ten expanded and notched behind. The species of Madurea (fig. 54) are found both in North America and in Scotland, and are exclusively confined to the Lower Silurian period, so far as known. They have the shell coiled into a flat spiral, the mouth being furnished with a very curious, thick, and solid lid or "opercu- lum." The Lower Silurian Pteropods, or "Wing- ed Snails," are numerous, and belong principally to the genera Theca, Conularia, and Tentaculitcs, the last-mentioned of these often being extremely abundant in certain strata. Lastly, the Lower Silurian Rocks have yielded a vast number Fig. 52. — Mur- chisonia gracilis, Trenton Lime- stone, America. (After Billings.) Fig- 53-— Different views of Bellerofihon A rgo, Trenton Limestone, Canada. (After Billings.) of chambered shells, referable to animals which belong to the same great division as the Cuttle-fishes (the Cephalopoda), and of which the Pearly Nautilus is the only living representative at the present day. In this group of Cephalopods the animal possesses a well-developed external shell, which is divided into chambers by shelly partitions (" septa "). The animal lives in the last-formed and largest chamber of the shell, to 112 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. which it is organically connected by muscular attachments. The head is furnished with long muscular processes or "arms/' Fig. 54.— Different views of Maclnrca crenulata, Quebec Group, Newfoundland. (After Billings.) and can be protruded from the mouth of the shell at will, or again withdrawn within it. We learn, also, from the Pearly Nautilus, that these animals must have possessed two pairs of breathing organs or " gills ; " hence all these forms are grouped together under the name of the " Tetrabranchiate " Cephalo- pods (Gr. tetra, four; bragchia, gill). On the other hand, the ordinary Cuttle-fishes and Calamaries either possess an internal skeleton, or if they have an external shell, it is not chambered ; their "arms" are furnished with powerful organs of adhesion in the form of suckers ; and they possess only a single pair of gills. For this last reason they are termed the " Dibranchiate " Cephalopods (Gr. dis, twice ; bragchia, gill). No trace of the true Cuttle-fishes has yet been found in Lower Silurian deposits; but the Tetrabranchiate group is represented by a great num- ber of forms, sometimes of great size. The principal Lower Silurian genus is the well-known and widely-distributed Ortho- ceras (fig. 55). The shell in this genus agrees with that of the existing Pearly Nautilus, in consisting of numerous chambers separated by shelly partitions (or septa), the latter being per- forated by a tube which runs the whole length of the shell after the last chamber, and is known as the " siphuncle " (fig. 56, s). The last chamber formed is the largest, and in it the animal lives. The chambers behind this are apparently filled with some gas secreted by the animal itself; and these are sup- posed to act as a kind of float, enabling the creature to move with ease under the weight of its shell. The various air- chambers, though the siphuncle passes through them, have no direct connection with one another; and it is believed that the animal has the power of slightly altering its specific gravity, and thus cf rising or sinking in the water by driving additional fluid into the siphuncle or partially emptying it. The Ortho- THE LOWER SILURIAN PERIOD. ceras further agrees with the Pearly Nautilus in the fact that the partitions or septa separating the different air-chambers are Fig- 55- — Fragment of Orthoceras crebri- septutn, Cincinnati Group, North America, of the natural size. The lower figure is a section showing the air-chambers, and the form and position of the siphuncle. (After Billings.) Fig. 56. — Restoration of Orthoceras^ the shell being supposed to be divided ver- tically, and only its upper part being shown, a, Arms ; f, Muscular tube ("funnel") by which water is expelled from the mantle-chamber; c, Air-cham- bers ; s, Siphuncle. simple and smooth, concave in front and convex behind, and devoid of the elaborate lobation which they exhibit in the Ammonites ; whilst the siphuncle pierces the septa either in the centre or near it. In the Nautilus, however, the shell is coiled into a flat spiral ; whereas in Orthoceras the shell is a straight, longer or shorter cone, tapering behind, and gradu- ally expanding towards its mouth in front The chief objec- tions to the belief that the animal of the Orthoceras was essen- tially like that of the Pearly Nautilus are — the comparatively small size of the body-chamber, the often contracted aperture of the mouth, and the enormous size of some specimens of * This illustration is taken from a rough sketch made by the author many years ago, but he is unable to say from what original source it was copied. 114 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. the shell. Thus, some Orthocei\~:ta have been discovered measuring ten or twelve feet in length, with a diameter of a foot at the larger extremity. These colossal dimensions cer- tainly make it difficult to imagine that the comparatively small body-chamber could have held an animal large enough to move a load so ponderous as its own shell. To some, this difficulty has appeared so great that they prefer to believe that the Orthoceras did not live in its shell at all, but that its shell was an internal skeleton similar to what we shall find to exist in many of the true Cuttle-fishes. There is something to be said in favour of this view, but it would compel us to believe in the existence in Lower Silurian times of Cuttle-fishes fully equal In size to the giant "Kraken" of fable. It need only be added in this connection that the Lower Silurian rocks have yielded the remains of many other Tetrabranchiate Cephalo- pods besides Orthoceras. Some of these belong to Cyrtoceras, which only differs from Orthoceras in the bow-shaped form of the shell ; others belong to Phragmoceras, Lituites, &c. ; and, hstly, we have true Nautili, with their spiral shells, closely resembling the existing Pearly Nautilus. Whilst all the sub-kingdoms of the Invertebrate animals are represented in the Lower Silurian rocks, no traces of Verte- brate animals have ever been discovered in these ancient deposits, unless the so-called " Conodonts" found by Pander in vast numbers in strata of this age * in Russia should prove to be really of this nature. These problematical bodies are of microscopic size, and have the form of minute, conical, tooth- shaped spines, with sharp edges, and hollow at the base. Their original discoverer regarded them as the horny teeth of fishes allied to the Lampreys ; but Owen came to the con- clusion that they probably belonged to Invertebrates. The recent investigation of a vast number of similar but slightly larger bodies, of very various forms, in the Carboniferous rocks of Ohio, has led Professor Newberry to the conclusion that these singular fossils really are, as Pander thought, the teeth of Cyclostomatous fishes. The whole of this difficult question has thus been reopened, and we may yet have to record the first advent of Vertebrate animals in the Lower Silurian. * According to Pander, the "Conodonts" are found not only in the Lower Silurian beds, but also in the " Ungulite Grit " (Upper Cambrian), as well as in the Devonian and Carboniferous deposits of Russia. Should the Conodonts prove to be truly the remains of fishes, we should thus have to transfer the first appearance' of Vertebrates to, at any rate, as early a period as the Upper Cambrian. THE UPPER SILURIAN PERIOD. 115 CHAPTER X. THE UPPER SILURIAN PERIOD. Having now treated of the Lower Silurian period at consider- able length, it will not be necessary to discuss the succeeding group of the Upper Silurian in the same detail — the more so, as with a general change of species the Upper Silurian animals belong for the most part to the same great types as those which distinguish the Lower Silurian. As compared, also, as regards the total bulk of strata concerned, the thickness of the Upper Silurian is generally very much below that of the Lower Silurian, indicating that they represent a proportionately shorter period of time. In considering the general succession of the Upper Silurian beds, we shall, as before, select Wales and America as being two regions where these deposits are typically developed. In Wales and its borders the general succession of the Upper Silurian rocks may be taken to be as follows, in ascend- ing order (fig. 57):— (1) The base of the Upper Silurian series is constituted by a series of arenaceous beds, to which the name of " May Hill Sandstone " was applied by Sedgwick. These are succeeded by a series of greenish-grey or pale-grey slates (" Tarannon Shales"), sometimes of great thickness; and these two groups of beds together form what may be termed the "May Hill Group" (Upper Llandovery of Murchison). Though not very extensively developed in Britain, this zone is one very well marked by its fossils ; and it corresponds with the " Clinton Group" of North America, in which similar fossils occur. In South Wales this group is clearly unconformable to the highest member of the subjacent Lower Silurian (the Llandovery group); and there is reason to believe that a similar, though less con- spicuous, physical break occurs very generally between the base of the Upper and the summit of the Lower Silurian. (2) The Wenlock Group succeeds the May Hill group, and constitutes the middle member of the Upper Silurian. At its base it may have an irregular limestone ("Woolhope Lime- stone"), and its summit maybe formed by a similar but thicker calcareous deposit ("Wenlock Limestone"); but the bulk of the group is made up of the argillaceous and shaly strata known as the " Wenlock Shale." In North Wales the Wenlock group is represented by a great accumulation of flaggy and gritty strata (the "Denbighshire Flags and Grits"), and similar beds (the Il6 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. " Coniston Flags " and " Coniston Grits ") take the same place in the north of England. (3) The Ludlow Group is the highest member of the Upper Silurian, and consists typically of a lower arenaceous and shaly series (the "Lower Ludlow Rock") a middle calcareous member (the " Aymestry Limestone"), and an upper shaly and sandy series (the " Upper Ludlow Rock " and " Downton Sand- stone"). At the summit, or close to the summit, of the Upper Ludlow, is a singular stratum only a few inches thick (vary- ing from an inch to a foot), which contains numerous remains of crustaceans and fishes, and is well known under the name of the "bone-bed." Finally, the Upper Ludlow rock graduates invariably into a series of red sandy deposits, which, when of a flaggy character, are known locally as the "Tile-stones." These beds are probably to be regarded as the highest member of the Upper Silurian ; but they are sometimes looked upon as passage-beds into the Old Red Sandstone, or as the base of this formation. It is, in fact, apparently impossible to draw any actual line of demarcation between the Upper Silurian and the overlying deposits of the Devonian or Old Red Sandstone series. Both in Britain and in America the Lower Devonian beds repose with perfect conformity upon the highest Silurian beds, and the two formations appear to pass into one another by a gradual and imperceptible transition. The Upper Silurian strata of Britain vary from perhaps 3000 or 4000 feet in thickness up to 8000 or io,oco feet. In North America the corresponding series, though also variable, is generally of much smaller thickness, and may be under 1000 feet. The general succession of the Upper Silurian deposits of North America is as follows : — (1) Medina Sandstone. — This constitutes the base of the Upper Silurian, and consists of sandy strata, singularly devoid of life, and passing below in some localities into a conglo- merate (" Oneida Conglomerate "), which is stated to contain pebbles derived from the older beds, and which would thus indicate an unconformity between the Upper and Lower Silurian. (2) Clinton Group. — Above the Medina sandstone are beds of sandstone and shale, sometimes with calcareous bands, which constitute what is known as the " Clinton Group." The Medina and Clinton groups are undoubtedly the equivalent of the " May Hill Group " of Britain, as shown by the identity of their fossils. THE UPPER SILURIAN PERIOD. II/ GENERALISED SECTION OF THE UPPER SILURIAN STRATA OF WALES AND SHROPSHIRE. Fig. 57- Base of Old Red Sand- stone. Tile-stones. — Upper Ludlow Rock. — Aymestry Limestone. Lower Ludlow Rock. Wenlock Limestone. I Wenlock Shale (Denbigh- J shire Flags and Grits of ( North Wales). Woolhope Limestone. Tarannon Shales. May Hill Sandstone. Llandovery Rocks. (3) Niagara Group. — This group consists typically of a series of argillaceous beds (" Niagara Shale") capped by limestones ("Niagara Limestone"); and the name of the group is derived from the fact that it is over limestones of this age that the Niagara river is precipitated to form the great Falls. In places the Niagara group is wholly calcareous, and it is continued upwards into a series of marls and sand- stones, with beds of salt and masses of gypsum (the " Salina Group "), or into a series of magnesian limestones (" Guelph Limestones "). The Niagara group, as a whole, corresponds unequivocally with the Wenlock group of Britain. (4) Lower Helderberg Group. — The Upper Silurian period in North America was terminated by the deposition of a series of calcareous beds, which derive the name of " Lower Helder- berg" from the Helderberg mountains, south of Albany, and IlS HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. which are divided into several zones, capable of recognition by their fossils, and known by local names (Tentaculite Lime- stone, Water-lime, Lower Pentamerus Limestone, Delthyris Shaly Limestone, and Upper Pentamerus Limestone). As a whole, this series may be regarded as the equivalent of the Ludlow group of Britain, though it is difficult to establish any precise parallelism. The summit of the Lower Helderberg group is constituted by a coarse-grained sandstone (the " Oris- kany Sandstone "), replete with organic remains, which have to a large extent a Silurian fades. Opinions differ as to whether this sandstone is to be regarded as the highest bed of the Upper Silurian or the base of the Devonian. We thus see that in America, as in Britain, no other line than an artificial one can be drawn between the Upper Silurian and the overlying Devonian. As regards the life of the Upper Silurian period, we have, as before, a number of so-called " Fucoids," the true vegetable nature of which is in many instances beyond doubt. In addi- tion to these, however, we meet for the first time, in deposits of this age, with the remains of genuine land-plants, though our knowledge of these is still too scanty to enable us to con- struct any detailed picture of the terrestrial vegetation of the period. Some of these remains indicate the existence of the remarkable genus Lepidodendron — a genus which played a part of great importance in the forests of the Devonian and Carbon- iferous periods, and which may be regarded as a gigantic and extinct type of the Club-mosses (Lycopodiacece). Near the summit of the Ludlow formation in Britain there have also been found beds charged with numerous small globular bodies, which Dr Hooker has shown to be the seed-vessels or " spor- angia" of Club-mosses. Principal Dawson further states that he has seen in the same formation fragments of wood with the structure of the singular Devonian Conifer known as Proto- taxites. Lastly, the same distinguished observer has described from the Upper Silurian of North America the remains of the singular land-plants belonging to the genus Psilophyton, which will be referred to at greater length hereafter. The marine life of the Upper Silurian is in the main con- stituted by types of animals similar to those characterising the Lower Silurian, though for the most part belonging to different species. The Protozoans are represented principally by Stro- matopora and Ischadites, along with a number of undoubted sponges (such as Amphispongia, Astrtzospongia, Astylospongia, and Palceomanori). Amongst the Coelenterates, we find the old group of Grap- tolites now verging on extinction. Individuals still remain THE UPPER SILURIAN PERIOD. 119 B C numerous, but the variety of generic and specific types has now become greatly reduced. All the branching and complex forms of the Arenig, the twin-Grap- tolites and Dicranograpti of the Llandeilo, and the double-celled Diplograpti and Climacograpti of the Bala group, have now disap- peared. In their place we have the singular Retiolites, with its curi- ously-reticulated skeleton; and seve- ral species of the single-celled genus Monograptus, of which a character- istic species (M. priodon) is here figured. If we remove from this group the plant-like Dictyoncma, which are still present, and which survive into the Devonian, no known species of Graptolite has hitherto been detected in strata higher in geological position than the Ludlow. This, therefore, pre- sents us with the first instance we have as yet met with of the total disappearance and extinction of a great and important series of or- ganic forms. The Corals are very numerously represented in the Upper Silurian rocks, some of the limestones (such as the Wenlock Limestone) being often largely composed of the skeletons of these animals. Almost all the known forms of this period belong to the two great divisions of the Rugose and Tabulate corals, the former being represented by species of Zaphrentis, Omphyma, Cystiphyllum, Strombodes, Acenmlaria, Cyathophyllum, &c. ; whilst the latter belong principally to the genera Favositcs, Chcetetes, ffaly sites, Syringopora, Hcliolites, and . Plasmopora. Amongst the Rugosa, the -first appearance of the great and important genus Cyathophyllum, so characteristic of the Palae- ozoic period, is to be noted ; and amongst the Tabulata we have similarly the first appearance, in force at any rate, of the widely-spread genus Favosites — the " Honeycomb- corals." The "Chain-corals" (Halysites}, figured below (fig. 59), are also very common examples of the Tabulate corals during this period, though they occur likewise in the Lower Silurian. Fig. 58. — A, Monograptus prio- dont slightly enlarged. B, Frag- ment of the same viewed from behind. C, Fragment of the same viewed in front, showing the mouths of the cellules. D, Cross-section of the same. From the Wenlock Group (Coniston Flags of the North of England). (Original.) 120 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. Amongst the Echinodermata, all those orders which have hard parts capable of ready preservation are more or less d Fig. 59.— a, Halysites cntennlaria, small variety, of the natural size ; b, Fragment of a large variety of the same, of the natural size ; c, Fragment of limestone with the tubes of Halysites agglomerata, of the natural size ; d, Vertical section of two tubes of the same, showing the tabulae, enlarged. Niagara Limestone (Wenlock), Canada. (Original.) largely represented. We have no trace of the Holothurians or Sea-cucumbers ; but this is not surprising, as the record of the past is throughout almost silent as to the former existence of these soft-bodied creatures, the scattered plates and spicules in their skin offering a very uncertain chance of preservation in the fossil condition. The Sea-urchins (Echinoids} are said to be represented by examples of the old genus Pa/echinus. The Star-fishes (Asteroids] and the Brittle- stars (Ophiuroids) are, comparatively speaking, largely represented , the former by species of Palasterina (fig. 60), PalcRctster (fig. 60), Palczo- coma (fig. 60), Petraster, Glyptaster, and Lepidaster — and the latter by species of Protaster (fig. 61), Palaodiscus, Acroura, and Eucladia. The singular Cystideans, or " Globe Crinoids," with their globular or ovate, tesselated bodies (fig. 46, A, C, D.), are also not uncommon in the Upper Silurian ; and if they do not become finally extinct here, they certainly survive the close of this period by but a very brief time. 13 y far the most im- portant, however, of the Upper Silurian Echinoderms, are the Sea-lilies or Crinoids. The limestones of this period are often largely composed of the fragmentary columns and detached THE UPPER SILURIAN PERIOD. 121 plates of these creatures, and some of them (such as the Wen- lock Limestone of Dudley) have yielded perhaps the most Fig. 60.— Upper Silurian Star-fishes, i, Palasterina primcrva, Lower Ludlow ; 2, Palce'astcr Rutkveni, Lower Ludlow ; 3, PaUeocoma Colvini, Lower Ludlow. (After Sailer.) exquisitely-preserved examples of this group with which we are as yet acquainted. However varied in their forms, these Fig. 61. — A, Protaster SedgwicJcit, showing the disc and bases of the arms ; B, Por- tion of an arm, greatly enlarged. Lower Ludlow. (After Salter.) beautiful organisms consist of a globular, ovate, or pear-shaped body (the " calyx "), supported upon a longer or shorter jointed stem (or " column "). The body is covered externally with an armour of closely-fitting calcareous plates (fig. 62), and its upper surface is protected by similar but smaller plates more loosely connected by a leathery integument. From the upper surface of the body, round its margin, springs a series of longer or shorter flexible processes, composed of innu- merable calcareous joints or pieces, movably united with one 122 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. another. The arms are typically five in number ; but they generally subdivide at least once, sometimes twice, and they Fig 62. — Upper Silurian Crinoids. a, Calyx and arms of Encalyptocrinus polydacty- /HS, Wenlock Limestone ; b, Ichthyocrinns Icevis, Niagara Limestone, America ; c, Taxocrmus tuberculatus, Wenlock Limestone. (After M'Coy and Hall.) are furnished with similar but more slender lateral branches or " pinnules," thus giving rise to a crown of delicate feathery plumes. The " column " is the stem by which the animal is attached permanently to the bottom of the sea ; and it is com- posed of numerous separate plates, so jointed together that whilst the amount of movement between any two pieces must be very limited, the entire column acquires more or less flexi- bility, allowing the organism as a whole to wave backwards and forwards on its stalk. Into the exquisite minutia of structure by which the innumerable parts entering into the composition of a single Crinoid are adapted for their proper purposes in the economy of the animal, it is impossible to enter here. No period, as before said, has yielded examples of greater beauty than the Upper Silurian, the principal genera represented being Cyathocrinus, Platycrinus, Marsupiocrinus, Taxocrinus, Eucalyptocrinus, Ichthyocrinus, Mariacrinus, Periechocrinus, Glyptocrinus, Crotalocrinus, and Edriocrinus. The tracks and burrows of Annelides are as abundant in the Upper Silurian strata as in older deposits, and have just as commonly been regarded as plants. The most abundant forms are the cylindrical, twisted bodies (Planohtes), which are THE UPPER SILURIAN PERIOD. 123 so frequently found on the surfaces of sandy beds, and which have been described as the stems of sea-weeds. These fossils (fig. 63), however, can be nothing more, in most cases, than Fig. 63. — Planolites vulgaris, the filled -up burrows of a marine worm. Upper Silurian (Clinton Group), Canada. (Original.) the filled-up burrows of marine worms resembling the living Lob-worms. There are also various remains which belong to the group of the tube-inhabiting Annelides (Tubicola). Of this nature are the tubes of Serpulites and Cornulites, and the little spiral discs of Spirorbis Leivisii. Amongst the Articulates, we still meet only with the remains of Crustaceans. Besides the little bivalved Ostracoda — which here are occasionally found of the size of beans — and various Phyllopods of different kinds, we have an abundance of Trilo- bites. These last-mentioned ancient types, however, are now beginning to show signs of decadence ; and though still indi- vidually numerous, there is a great diminution in the number of generic types. Many of the old genera, which flourished so abundantly in Lower Silurian seas, have now died out; and the group is represented chiefly by species of Cheirurus, Encrinurus, Harpes, Praetus, Lichas, Acidaspis, Illcenus, Caly- me/ie, Homalonotus, and Phacops — the last of these, one of the 124 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. highest and most beautiful of the groups of Trilobites, attaining here its maximum of development. In the annexed illustra- tion (fig. 64) some of the characteristic Upper Silurian Trilo- Fig. 64. — Upper Silurian Trilobites. a, Cheirurus bimucronatus, Wenlock and Cara- doc; b, Phacops longicaudalus, Wenlock, Britain, and America; c, Phacops Downingice, Wenlock and Ludlow ; d, Harpes ungula, Upper Silurian, Bohemia. (After Salter and Barrande.) bites are represented — all, however, belonging to genera which have their commencement in the Lower Silurian period. In addition to the above, the Ludlow rocks of Britain and the Lower Helderberg beds of North America have yielded the remains of certain singular Crustaceans belonging to the extinct order of the Eurypterida. Some of these wonderful forms are not remarkable for their size ; but others, such as Pterygotus Anglicus (fig. 65), attain a length of six feet or more, and may fairly be considered as the giants of their class. The Eurypterids are most nearly allied to the existing King-crabs (Limuti), and have the anterior end of the body covered with a great head-shield, carrying two pairs of eyes, the one simple and the other compound. The feelers are converted into pincers, whilst the last pair of limbs have their bases covered with spiny teeth so as to act as jaws, and are flattened and widened out towards their extremities so as to officiate as swimming-paddles. The hinder extremity of the body is com- posed of thirteen rings, which have no legs attached to them ; and the last segment of the tail is either a flattened plate or a THE UPPER SILURIAN PERIOD. 12 narrow, sword-shaped spine. Fragments of the skeleton are easily recognised by the peculiar scale-like markings with which the surface is adorned, and which look not at all unlike the scales of a fish. The most fam- ous locality for these great Crus- taceans is Lesmahagow, in Lan- arkshire, where many different species have been found. The true King-crabs (Limult) of exist- ing seas also appear to have been represented by at least one form (Neolimulus) in the Upper Silu- rian. Coming to the Mottusca, we note the occurrence of the same great groups as in the Lower Silurian. Amongst the Sea- mosses (Polyzod), we have the ancient Lace - corals (Fenestella and Retepora), with the nearly- allied Glaticonome, and species of Ptilodiclya (fig. 66) ; whilst many forms often referred here may probably have to be transferred to the Corals, just as some so- called Corals will ultimately be removed to the present group. The Brachiopods continued to flourish during the Upper Silurian period in immense num- bers and under a greatly in- creased variety of forms. The three prominent Lower Silurian genera Orlhis, Strophomena, and Leptana are still well represented, though they have lost their former pre- eminence. Amongst the numerous types which have now come upon the scene for the first time, or which have now a special development, are Spirifcra and Pentamenis. In the first of these (fig. 69, b, c), one of the valves of the shell (the dorsal) is furnished in its interior with a pair of great calca- reous spires, which served for the support of the long and fringed fleshy processes or " arms " which were attached to the sides of the mouth.* In the genus Pentamerus (fig. 70) the * In all the Lamp-shells the mouth is provided with two long fleshy organs, which carry delicate filaments on their sides, and which are 10 Fig. 65. — Pterygotut Anglicus, viewed from the under side, reduced in size, and restored, c c, The feelers (antennae), terminating in nipping- claws ; o o, Eyes ; in in, Three pairs of jointed limbs, with pointed extremi- ties ; n n, Swimming-paddles, the bases of which are spiny and act as jaws. Upper Silurian, Lanarkshire. (After Henry Woodward.) 126 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. shell is curiously subdivided in its interior by calcareous plates. The Pentameri commenced their existence at the very Fig. 66. — Upper Silurian Polyzoa. i, Fan-shaped frond of Rhinopora verrncosa', in, Portion of the surface of the same, enlarged ; 2 and za, Pfuenopora ensiformis, of the natural size and enlarged ; 3 and jft, Helopora fragilis, of the natural size and en- larged ; 4 and 4*7, Ptilodictya raripora, of the natural, size and enlarged. The speci- mens are all from the Clinton Formation (May Hill Group) of Canada. (Original.) close of the Lower Silurian (Llandovery), and survived to the close of the Upper Silurian ; but they are specially character- istic of the May Hill and Wenlock groups, both in Britain and in other regions. One species, Pentamerus galeatus, is common to Sweden, Britain, and America. Amongst the remaining Upper Silurian Brachiopods are the extraordinary usually coiled into a spiral. These organs are known as the "arms," and it is from their presence that the name of " Brachiopoda " is derived (Gr. brachion, arm ; podes, feet). In some cases the arms are merely coiled away within the shell, without any support ; but in other cases they are carried upon a more or less elaborate shelly loop, often spoken of as the "carriage-spring apparatus." In the Spirifers, and in other ancient genera, this apparatus is coiled up into a complicated spiral (fig. 67). It Fig. 67. — Spirifera hysterica. The right-hand figure shows the interior of the dorsal valve, with the calcareous spires for the sup ipport of the arms. is these "arms," with or without the supporting loops or spires, which serve as one of the special characters distinguishing the Brachiopods from the true Bivalves (Lantdlibranchiatd). THE UPPER SILURIAN PERIOD. 127 Trimerellids ; the old and at the same time modern Lingulee, Distinct, and Cranicz ; together with many species of Atrypa Fig. 68. — Upper Silurian Brachiopods. a a', Leptoccelia plano-convexa, Clinton Group, America ; b b' , Rhynchonella neglecta, Clinton Group, America ; c, Rhynchonella cuneata, Niagara Group, America, and Wenlock Group, Britain; d d', Orthis elegan- tnla, Llandeilo to Ludlow, America and Europe; e e, Atrypa hetnispJterica, Clinton Group, America, and Llandovery and May Hill Groups, Britain ;ff, Atrypa congesta, Clinton Group, America ; g g' , Orthis Davidsoni, Clinton Group, America. (After Hall, Billings, and the Author.) (fig. 68, e}, Leptoccelia (fig. 68, a], Rhynchonella (fig. 68, b, c\ Meristella (fig. 69, a, Fig. 72. —Upper Silurian Gasteropods. a, Platyceras ventricosum, Lower Helder- berg, America ; b, Euomphalies discors, Wenlock, Britain ; c , Holopella obsoleta, Lud- low, Britain; d, Platyschisma helicites, Upper Ludlow, Britain ; e, Holopella grac Hi or, Wenlock, Britain ;f, Platyceras multisinuatum, Lower Helderberg, America; g, Holo- pza s-itbconica. Lower Helderberg, America ; h, h' ', Platyostoma Niagarense, Niagara Group, America. (After Hall, M'Coy, and Salter.) (fig. 72, g), Holopella (fig. 72, e), Platyschisma (fig. 72, //), Cyclonema, Pleurotomaria, Murchisonia, Trochomim, &c. The oceanic Univalves (Heteropods) are rep- resented mainly by species of Bellero- phon ; and the Winged Snails, or Plero- pods, can still boast of the gigantic Theccc and Conularicz, which characterise yet older deposits. The commonest genus of Pteropoda, however, is Tentaculites (fig. 73), which clearly belongs here, though it has commonly been regarded as the tube of an Ann elide. The shell in this group is a conical tube, usually adorned with prominent transverse rings, and often with finer transverse or longitudi- nal striae as well ; and many beds of the IJpper Silurian exhibit myriads of such tubes scattered promis- cuously over their surfaces. *'ig 73- — Tentaculites or- natu*. Upper Silurian of Europe and North America. 130 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. The last and highest group of the Molhisca — that of the Cephalopoda — is still represented only by Teirabranchiate forms ; but the abundance and variety of these is almost beyond belief. Many hundreds of different species are known, chiefly belonging to the straight Orthoceratites, but the slightly- curved Cyrtoceras is only little less common. There are also numerous forms of the genera Phragmoceras, Ascoceras, Gyro- ceras, Lituites, and Nautilus. Here, also, are the first-known species of the genus Goniatites — a group which attains con- siderable importance in later deposits, and which is to be regarded as the precursor of the Ammonites of the Secondary period. Finally, we find ourselves for the first time called upon to consider the remains of undoubted vertebrate animals, in the form of Fishes. The oldest of these remains, so far as yet known, are found in the Lower Lucllow rocks, and they con- sist of the bony head-shields or bucklers of certain singular armoured fishes belong- ing to the group of the Ganoids, repre- sented at the present day by the Stur- geons, the Gar-pikes of North America, and a few other less familiar forms. The principal Upper Silurian genus of these is Pteraspis, and the annexed illustration (fig. 74) will give some idea of the extraordi- nary form of the shield covering the head in these ancient fishes. The remarkable stratum near the top of the Ludlow for- mation known as the " bone-bed " has also yielded the remains of shark-like fishes. Some of these, for which the name of Onckus has been proposed, are in the form of com- pressed, slightly- curved spines (fig. 75, A), which would appear Fig- 74- — Head-shield of Pteraspis Banksii, l.udlow rocks. (After Murchison.) Fig. 75- — A, Spine of Onchus tcnmstriafns ; B, Shagreen-scales of Thelo&is. from the " bone-bed " of the Upper Ludlow rocks. (After Murchison.) Both to be of the nature of the strong defensive spines implanted in front of certain of the fins in many living fishes. Besides these, have been found fragments of prickly skin or shagreen (Sphagodus], along with minute cushion-shaped bodies (Thdo- THE UPPER SILURIAN PERIOD. 13! dus, fig. 75, B), which are doubtless the bony scales of some fish resembling the modern Dog-fishes. As the above mentioned remains belong to two distinct, and at the same time highly- organised, groups of the fishes, it is hardly likely that we are really presented here with the first examples of this great class. On the contrary, whether the so-called "Conodonts" should prove to be the teeth of fishes or not, we are justified in ex- pecting that unequivocal remains of this group of animals will still be found in the Lower Silurian. It is interesting, also, to note that the first appearance of fishes — the lowest class of vertebrate animals — so far as known to us at present, does not take place until after all the great sub-kingdoms of invertebrates have been long in existence ; and there is no reason for think- ing that future discoveries will materially affect the relative order of succession thus indicated. LITERATURE. From the vast and daily-increasing mass of Silurian literature, it is im- possible to do more than select a small number of works which have a classical and historical interest to the English-speaking geologist, or which embody researches on special groups of Silurian animals — anything like an enumeration of all the works and papers on this subject being wholly out of the question. Apart, therefore, from numerous and in many cases extremely important memoirs, by various well-known observers, both at home and abroad, the following are some of the more weighty works to which the student may refer in investigating the physical characters and succession of the Silurian strata and their fossil contents : — (1) 'Siluria.' Sir Roderick Murchison. (2) ' Geology of Russia in Europe.' Murchison (with M. de Verneuil and Count von Keyserling). "(3) ' Bassiu Silurian de Boheme Centrale.' Barrande. (4) ' Introduction to the Catalogue of British Palaeozoic ^Fossils in the Woodwardian Museum of Cambridge.' Sedgwick. (5) < Die Urwelt Russlands.' Eichwald. (6) ' Report on the Geology of Londonderry, Tyrone,' &c. Portlock. (7) "Geology of North Wales" — 'Mem. Geol. Survey of Great Britain,' vol. iii. Ramsay. • (8) * Geology of Canada,' 1863, Sir W. E. Logan ; and the * Reports of Progress of the Geological Survey' since 1863. (9) ' Memoirs of the Geological Survey of Great Britain.' (10) ' Reports of the Geological Surveys of the States of New York, Illinois, Ohio, Iowa, Michigan, Vermont, Wisconsin, Minne- sota,' &c. Bv Emmons, Hall, Worthen, Meek, Newberry, Orton, Winchell, Dale Owen, &c. (11) 'Thesaurus Siluricus.' Bigsby. (12) 'British Paleozoic Fossils.' M'Coy. (13) ' Synopsis of the Silurian Fossils of Ireland,' M'Coy. (14) " Appendix to the Geology of North Wales " — ' Mem. Geol. Survey,' vol. iii. Salter. 132 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. (15) ' Catalogue of the Cambrian and Silurian Fossils in the Woodward - ian Museum of Cambridge. ' Salter. (16) ' Characteristic British Fossils.' Baily. (17) * Catalogue of British Fossils.' Morris. (18) ' Palaeozoic Fossils of Canada.' Billings. (19) 'Decades of the Geological Survey of Canada.' Billings, Salter, Rupert Jones. (20) ' Decades of the Geological Survey of Great Britain.' Salter, Edward Forbes. (21) ' Palaeontology of New York,' vols. i.-iii. Hall. (22) ' Palaeontology of Illinois.' Meek and Worthen. (23) ' Palaeontology of Ohio.' Meek, Hall, Whitfield, Nicholson. (24) 'Silurian Fauna of West Tennessee' (Silurische Fauna des West- lichen Tennessee). Ferdinand Rcemer. (25) ' Reports on the State Cabinet of New York.' Hall. (26) ' Lethaea Geognostica.' Bronn. (27) ' Index Palaeontologicus.' Bronn. (25) ' Lethaa Rossica.' Eichwald. (29) ' Lethaea Suecica.' Hisinger. (30) ' Palaeontologica Suecica.' Angelin. (31) * Petrefacta Germaniae.' Goldfuss. (32) ' Versteinerungen der Grauwacken- Formation in Sachsen.' Geinitz. (33) ' Organisation of Trilobites ' (Ray Society). Burmeister. (34) 'Monograph of the British Trilobites' (Palaeontographical Society). Salter. (35) ' Monograph of the BritishMerostomata' (Palaeontographical Society). Henry Woodward. (36) ' Monograph of British Brachiopoda ' (Palaeontographical Society). Thomas Davidson. (37) ' Graptolites of the Quebec Group.' James Hall. (38) ' Monograph of the British Graptolitidae.' Nicholson. (39) ' Monographs on the Trilobites, Pteropods, Cephalopods, Grapto- lites,' &c. Extracted from the ' Systeme Silurien du Centre de la Boheme. ' Barrande. (40) ' Polypiers Fossiles des Terrains Paleozoiques,' and 'Monograph of the British Corals' (Palaeontographical Society). Milne Ed- wards and Jules Haime. CHAPTER XL THE DEVONIAN AND OLD RED SANDSTONE PERIOD. Between the summit of the Ludlow formation and the strata which are universally admitted to belong to the Carboniferous DEVONIAN AND OLD RED PERIOD. 133 series is a great system of deposits, to which the name of " Old Red Sandstone" was originally applied, to distinguish them from certain arenaceous strata which lie above the coal (" New Red Sandstone"). The Old Red Sandstone, properly so called, was originally described and investigated as occurring in Scotland and in South Wales and its borders ; and similar strata occur in the south of Ireland. Subsequently it was discovered that sediments of a different mineral nature, and containing different organic remains, intervened between the Silurian and the Carboniferous rocks on the continent of Eu- rope, and strata with similar palaeontological characters to these were found occupying a considerable area in Devonshire. The name of " Devonian " was applied to these deposits ; and this title, by common usage, has come to be regarded as synony- mous with the name of " Old Red Sandstone." Lastly, a magnificent series of deposits, containing marine fossils, and undoubtedly equivalent to the true "Devonian" of Devon- shire, Rhenish Prussia, Belgium, and France, is found to inter- vene in North America between the summit of the Silurian and the base of the Carboniferous rocks. Much difficulty has been felt in correlating the true " Devon- ian Rocks" with the typical " Old Red Sandstone" — this diffi- culty arising from the fact that though both formations are fossiliferous, the peculiar fossils of each have only been rarely and partially found associated together. , The characteristic crustaceans and many of the characteristic fishes of the Old Red are wanting in the Devonian ; whilst the corals and marine shells of the latter do not occur in the former. It is impossible here to enter into any discussion as to the merits of the controversy to which this difficulty has given origin. No one, however, can doubt the importance and reality of the Devonian series as an independent system of rocks to be in- tercalated in point of time between the Silurian and the Car- boniferous. The want of agreement, both lithologically and palaeontologically, between the Devonian and the Old Red, can be explained by supposing that these two formations, though wholly or in great part contemporaneous, and therefore strict equivalents, represent deposits in two different geographi- cal areas, laid down under different conditions. On this view, the typical Devonian rocks of Europe, Britain, and North America are the deep-sea deposits of the Devonian period, or, at any rate, are genuine marine sediments formed far from land. On the other hand, the " Old Red Sandstone " of Britain and the corresponding "Gaspe Group" of Eastern 134 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. Canada represent the shallow-water shore-deposits of the same period. In fact, the former of these last -mentioned de- posits contains no fossils which can be asserted positively to be marine (unless the Eurypterids be considered so) ; and it is even conceivable that it represents the sediments of an inland sea. Accepting this explanation in the meanwhile, we may very briefly consider the general succession of the deposits of this period in Scotland, in Devonshire, and in North America. In Scotland the " Old Red " forms a great series of arena- ceous and conglomeratic strata, attaining a thickness of man}' thousands of feet, and divisible into three groups. Of these, the Lower Old Red Sandstone reposes with perfect conform- ity upon the highest beds of the Upper Silurian, the two for- mations being almost inseparably united by an intermediate series of "passage-beds." In mineral nature this group con- sists principally of massive conglomerates, sandstones, shales, and concretionary limestones ; and its fossils consist chiefly of large crustaceans belonging to the family of the Ewypterids, fishes, and plants. The Middle Old Red Sandstone consists of flagstones, bituminous shales, and conglomerates, sometimes with irregular calcareous bands ; and its fossils are principally fishes and plants. It may be wholly wanting, when the Upper Old Red seems to repose unconformably upon the lower divi- sion of the series. The Upper Old Red Sandstone consists of conglomerates and grits, along with a great series of red and yellow sandstones — the fossils, as before, being fishes and re- mains of plants. The Upper Old Red graduates upwards conformably into the Carboniferous series. The Devonian rocks of Devonshire are likewise divisible into a lower, middle, and upper division. The Lower Devonian or Lynton Gronp consists of red and purple sand- stones, with marine fossils, corresponding to the "Spirifer Sandstein " of Germany, and to the arenaceous deposits (Scho- harie and Cauda-Galli Grits) at the base of the American Devonian. The Middle Devoiiian or Ilfracombe Group consists of sandstones and flags, with calcareous slates and crystalline limestones, containing many corals. It corresponds with the great " Eifel Limestone " of the Continent, and, in a general way, with the Corniferous Limestone and Hamilton group of North America. The Upper Devonian or Pilton Group, lastly, consists of sandstones and calcareous shales which correspond with the"Clymenia Limestone" and " Cypridina Shales "of the Continent, and with the Chemimg and Portage groups of DEVONIAN AND OLD RED PERIOD. 135 North America. It seems quite possible, also, that the so- called " Carboniferous Slates " of Ireland correspond with this group, and that the former would be more properly re- garded as forming the summit of the Devonian than the base of the Carboniferous. In no country in the world, probably, is there a finer or more complete exposition of the strata intervening be- tween the Silurian and Carboniferous deposits than in the United States. The following are the main subdivisions of the Devonian rocks in the State of New York, where the series may be regarded as being typically developed (fig. 67):- (1) Cauda-Galh Grit and Schohane Grit. — Considering the " Orfskany Sandstone " as the summit of the Upper Silurian, the base of the Devonian is constituted by the arenaceous deposits known by the above names, which rest quite conform- ably upon the Silurian, and which represent the Lower Devonian of Devonshire. The Cauda-Galli Grit is so called from the abundance of a peculiar spiral fossil (Spirophyton cauda-Gatti}, which is of common occurrence in the Carbon- iferous rocks of Britain, and is supposed to be the remains of a sea-weed. (2) The Corniferous or Upper Helderberg Limestone. — A series of limestones usually charged with considerable quan- tities of siliceous matter in the shape 'of hornstone or chert (Lat. cornu, horn). The thickness of this group rarely exceeds 300 feet ; but it is replete with fossils, more especially with the remains of corals. The Corniferous Limestone is the equivalent of the coral-bearing limestones of the Middle De- vonian of Devonshire and the great " Eifel Limestone " of Germany. (3) The Hamilton Group — consisting of shales at the base (" Marcellus shales ") ; flags, shales, and impure limestones ("Hamilton beds") in the middle ; and again a series of shales ("Genesee Slates") at the top. The thickness of this group varies from 200 to 1200 feet, and it is richly charged with marine fossils. (4) The Portage Groiip. — A great series of shales, flags, and shaly sandstones, with few fossils. (5) The Chemung Group. — Another great series of sand- stones and shales, but with many fossils. The Portage and Chemung groups may be regarded as corresponding with the Upper Devonian of Devonshire. The Chemung beds are succeeded by a great series of red sandstones and shales — the 136 HISTORICAL PAL/EONTOLOGY. " Catskill Group" — which pass conformably upwards into the Carboniferous, and which may perhaps be regarded as the equivalent of the great sandstones of the Upper Old Red in Scotland. Throughout the entire series of Devonian deposits in North America no unconformability or physical break of any kind has hitherto been detected ; nor is there any marked interrup- tion to the current of life, though each subdivision of the series has its own fossils. No completely natural line can thus be indicated, dividing the Devonian in this region from the Silu- rian on the one hand, and the Carboniferous on the other hand. At the same time, there is the most ample evidence, both stratigraphical and palaeontological, as to the complete independence of the American Devonian series as a distinct life-system between the older Silurian and the later Carbon- iferous. The subjoined section (fig. 76) shows diagrammati- cally the general succession of the Devonian rocks of North America. As regards the life of the Devonian period, we are now acquainted with a large and abundant terrestrial flora — this being the first time that we have met with a land vegetation capable of reconstruction in any fulness. By the researches of Goeppert, Unger, Dawson, Carruthers, and other botanists, a knowledge has been acquired of a large number of Devonian plants, only a few of which can be noticed here. As might have been anticipated, the greater number of the vegetable remains of this period have been obtained from such shallow- water deposits as the Old Red Sandstone proper and the Gaspe series of North America, and few traces of plant life occur in the strictly marine sediments. Apart from numerous remains, mostly of a problematical nature, referred to the comprehensive group of the Sea-weeds, a large number of Ferns have now been recognised, some being of the ordinary plant-like type (PecopteriS) Neuropteris, Alethopteris, Sphenopteris, &c.), whilst others belong to the gigantic group of the " Tree - ferns " (Psaronius, Caulopteris, &c.) Besides these .there is an abun- dant development of the singular extinct types of the Lepido- dendroids, the Sigillarioids, and the Calamitcs, all of which attained their maximum in the Carboniferous. Of these, the Lepidodendra may be regarded as gigantic, tree-like Club-mosses (Lyccpodiacea) ; the Calamites are equally gigantic Horse-tails (Equisetacecz] ; and the Sigillarioids, equally huge in size, in some respects hold a position intermediate between the Club- mosses and the Pines (Conifers). The Devonian rocks have DEVONIAN AND OLD RED PERIOD. 137 GENERALISED SECTION OF THE DEVONIAN ROCKS OF NORTH AMERICA. Fig. 76- Catskill Group. Chemung Group. Portage Group. Hamilton Group. Corniferous Limestone. Schoharie Grit. Cauda-Galli Grit. Oriskany Sandstone. Lower Heldeiberg. also yielded traces of many other plants (such as Annular ia, Asterophyllites, Cardiocarpon, &c.), which acquire a greater pre- dominance in the Carboniferous period, and which will be spoken of in discussing the structure of the plants of the Coal- measures. Upon the whole, the one plant which may be con- sidered as specially characteristic of the Devonian (though not confined to this series) is the Psilophyton (fig. 77) of Dr Daw- son. These singular plants have slender branching stems, with sparse needle-shaped leaves, the young stems being at first coiled up, crosier-fashion, like the young fronds of ferns, whilst the old branches carry numerous spore-cases. The 138 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. stems and branches seem to have attained a height of two or three feet ; and they sprang from prostrate " root-stocks " or creeping stems. Upon the whole, Principal Davvson is disposed to regard Psilophyton as a "general- ised type" of plants intermediate between the Ferns and the Club- mosses. Lastly, the Devonian de- posits have yielded the remains of the first actual trees with which we are as yet acquainted. About the nature of some of these (Ormoxylon and Dadoxylon) no doubt can be entertained, since their trunks not only show the concentric rings of growth characteristic of exogen- ous trees in general, but their woody tissue exhibits under the microscope the " discs " which are characteristic of the wood of the Pines and Firs (see fig. 2). The singular genus Prototaxites, how- ever, which occurs in an older por- tion of the Devonian series than the above, is not in an absolutely unchallenged position. By Prin- cipal Dawson it is regarded as the trunk of an ancient Conifer — the most ancient known ; but Mr Carruthers regards it as more pro- bably the stem of a gigantic sea- weed. The trunks of Prototaxites (fig. 78, A) vary from one to three feet in diameter, and exhibit con- centric rings of growth ; but its woody fibres have not hitherto been clearly demonstrated to pos- sess clipcs. Before leaving the Devonian vegetation, it may be mentioned that the hornstone or chert so abundant in the Corniferous limestone of North America has been shown to contain the remains of various microscopic plants {Diatoms and Desmids). We find also in the same siliceous material the singular spherical bodies, with radiating spines, which occur so abundantly in the chalk flints, and which are termed Xanthidia. These may be regarded *^g- 77 — Restoration of Psilo- phyton firinceps Devonian, Can .fter Da' ada. (Afte iwson.) DEVONIAN AND OLD RED PERIOD. 139 as probably the spore-cases of the minute plants known as Desmiditz. Fig. 78. — A, Trunk of Prototaxites Logani, eighteen inches in diameter, as seen in the cliff near L'Anse Brehaut, Gaspe ; B, Two wood-cells showing spiral fibres and obscure pores, highly magnified. Lower Devonian, Canada. (After Dawson.) The Devonian Protozoans have still to be fully investigat- ed. True Sponges (such as Astrceospongia, Sphcerospongia, &c.) are not unknown; but by far the commonest repre- sentatives of this sub -kingdom in the Devonian strata are Stromatopora and its allies. These singular organisms (fig. 79) are not only very abundant in some of the Devonian lime- stones— both in the Old World and the New — but they often attain very large dimensions. However much they may differ in minor details, the general structure of these bodies is that of numerous, concentrically-arranged, thin, calcareous laminae, separated by narrow interspaces, which in turn are crossed by numerous delicate vertical pillars, giving the whole mass a cellular structure, and dividing it into innumerable minute quadrangular compartments. Many of the Devonian Stromato- porce also exhibit on their surface the rounded openings of canals, which can hardly have served any other purpose than that of permitting the sea-water to gain ready access to every part of the organism. No true Graptolites have ever been detected in strata of 140 HISTORICAL PAL. 1- ONTOLOGY. Devonian age ; and the whole of this group has become ex- tinguished— unless we refer here the still surviving Dictyonemte. Fig. 79. — a, Part of the under surface of Stromatopora tulerculata, showing the wrinkled basement membrane and the openings of water-canals, of the natural size; b, Portion of the upper surface of the same, enlarged ; c, Vertical section of a fragment, mag- nified to show the internal structure. Corniferous Limestone, Canada. (Original.) The Cce tenter ates, however, are represented by a vast number of Corals, of beautiful forms and very varied types. The marbles of Devonshire, the Devonian limestones of the Eifel and of France, and the calcareous strata of the Corniferous and Hamilton groups of America, are often replete with the skeletons of these organisms — so much so as to sometimes entitle the rock to be considered as representing an ancient coral-reef. In some instances the Corals have preserved their primitive calcareous composition ; and if they are embedded in soft shales, they may weather out of the rock in almost all their original perfection. In other cases, as in the marbles of Devonshire, the matrix is so compact and crystalline that the included corals can only be satisfactorily studied by means of polished sections. In other cases, again, the corals have been more or less completely converted into flint, as in the Cornifer- ous limestone of North America. When this is the case, they often come, by the action of the weather, to stand out from DEVONIAN AND OLD RED PERIOD. the enclosing rock in the boldest relief, exhibiting to the ob- server the most minute details of their organisation. As before, Fig. 8 1. — Zaphrentis cornicn7a, of the natural size. Devonian, America. (Ori- ginal.) Fig. So. — Cystiphyllnm 7>esiculosnvi, showing a succession of cups produced by budding from the original coral. Of the natural size. Devonian, America and Europe. (Original.) Fig. 82. — Heliophylhtm exigiium, view- ed from in front and behind. Of the natu- ral size. Devonian, Canada. (Original.) the principal representatives of the Corals are still referable to the' groups of the Rugosa and Tabulata. Amongst the Rugose group we find a vast number of simple " cup-corals," generally known by the quarrymen as " horns," from their shape. Of 11 142 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. the many forms of these, the species of Cyathophylliim, Helio- phyllum (fig. 82), Zaphrentis (fig. 81), and Cystiphyllum (fig. 80), are perhaps those most abundantly represented — none of these genera, however, except Heliophyllum, being peculiar to the Devonian period. There are also numerous compound Ru- gose corals, such as species of EridophyUum^ Diphyphyl- lum, Syringopora, Phillipsastrcea, and some of the forms of Cyathophyllum and Crepidophyllum (fig. 83). Some of these compound corals. attain a very large size, and form of thera- Fig. 83. — Portion of a mass of Crepidophyllum Archinci, of the natural size. Hamilton * ormation, Canada. (After Billings.) selves regular beds, which have an analogy, at any rate, with existing coral-reefs, though there are grounds for believing that these ancient types differed from the modern reef-builders in being inhabitants of deep water. The " Tabulate Corals " are hardly less abundant in the Devonian rocks than the Rugosa ; and being invariably compound, they hardly yield to the latter in the dimensions of the aggregations which they sometimes form. The commonest, and at the same time the largest, of these are the " honeycomb corals," forming the genus Favosites (figs. 84, -85), which derive both their vernacular and their technical names from their great likeness to masses of petrified honeycomb. The most abundant species are Favosites Goth- landica and F. hemispheric^ both here figured, which form masses sometimes not less than two or three feet in diameter. Whilst Favosites has acquired a popular name by its honey- combed appearance, the resemblance of Michelinia to a fossil- DEVONIAN AND OLD RED PERIOD. 143 ised wasp's nest with the comb exposed is hardly less strik- ing, and has earned for it a similar recognition from the Fig. 84. — Portion of a mass of Favo- Fig. 85. — Fragment of Favcsiteshemi- sites Gothlandica, of the natural size. spherica, of the natural size. Upper Silu- Upper Silurian and Devonian of Europe rian and Devonian of America. '(After and America. (Original.) Billings.) non-scientific public. In addition to these, there are numer- ous branching or plant-like Tabulate Corals, often of the most graceful form, which are distinctive of the Devonian in all parts of the world. The Echinoderms of the Devonian period call for little special notice. Many of the Devonian limestones are "crin- oidal;" and the Crinoids are the most abundant and widely- distributed representatives of their class in the deposits of this period. . The Cystideans, with doubtful exceptions, have not been recognised in the Devonian ; and their place is taken by the allied group of the " Pentremites/' which will be further spoken of as occurring in the Carboniferous rocks. On the other hand, the Star-fishes, Brittle-stars, and Sea-urchins are all continued by types more or less closely allied to those of the preceding Upper Silurian. Of the remains of Ringed-worms (Anneltdes), the most numer- ous and the most interesting are the calcareous envelopes of some small tube-inhabiting species. No one who has visited the seaside can have failed to notice the little spiral tubes of the existing Spirorbis growing attached to shells, or covering the fronds of the commoner Sea- weeds (especially Fucus ser- ratus). These tubes are inhabited by a small Annelide, and structures of a similar character occur not uncommonly from the Upper Silurian upwards. In the Devonian rocks, Spir- orbis is an extremely common fossil, growing in hundreds attached to the outer surface of corals and shells, and appearing 144 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. in many specific forms (figs. 86 and 87) ; but almost all the known examples are of small size, ar.d are liable to escape a cursory examination. The Crustaceans of the Devonian are prin- c i pal I y Eurypterids and Trilobites. Some of the former attain gigantic dimensions, and the Fig. 87.— a, Sfiirorbis ovtfihalodes, natural size qimrrvmen intlieScOtcll and enlarged, Devonian, Europe and America ; Ai j T» j • ,1 ,1 b, Spircrbis Arkonensis, of the natural size and U«* r^O. glVC them the enlarged ; c, The same, with the tube twisted in the reverse direction. Devonian, America, (Ori- Cinal.) name of " seraphim/' from their singular scale - like ornamenta- tion. The Trilobites, though still sufficiently abundant in some local- ities, have undergone a yet further diminution since the close of the Upper Silurian. In both America and Europe quite a number of gen- eric types have survived from the Silurian, but few or no new ones make their appearance during this period in either the Old Fig. 88. — a b, Spirorbis laxns, enlarged, Upper Silurian, America; c, Spirorbis spinnlijera, of the natural size and enlarged, Devonian, Canada. (Af- ter Hall and the Author.) Fig. 88. — Devonian Trilobites n, Phaeops lat!/rons,'Dzvo-n\a.n of Britain, the Conti- nent of Europe, and South America ; b, Homalonotus armatns, Europe ; c, Phacops (Trimerocephalns) Icevis, Europe; d, Head-shield of Phacops (f'ortlockia) granulatns, Europe. (After Salter and Burmeister.) World or the New. The species, however, are distinct ; and the DEVONIAN AND OLD RED PERIOD. principal forms belong to the genera Phacops (fig. 88, a, c, d\ Homalonotus (fig. 88, b\ Proetus, and Bronteus. The species figured above under the name of Phacops latifrons (fig. 88, a), has an almost world-wide distribution, being found in the Devonian of Britain, Belgium, France, Germany, Russia, Spain, and South America ; whilst its place is taken in North Ame- rica by the closely-allied Phacops rana. In addition to the Trilobites, the Devonian deposits have yielded the remains of a number of the minute Ostracoda, such as Entomis (" Cypri- dina"), Leper ditia, £c., which sometimes occur in vast num- bers, as in the so-called " Cypridina Slates " of the German Devonian. There are also a few forms of Phyllopods (Es- theria). Taken as a whole, the Crustacean fauna of the Devonian period presents many alliances with that of the Upper Silurian, but has only slight relationships with that of the Lower Carboniferous. Besides Crustaceans, we meet here for the first time with the remains of ah '-breathing Articulates, in the shape of Insects. So far, these have only been obtained from the Devonian rocks of North America, and they indicate the existence of at least four generic types, all more or less allied to the existing May-flies (Ephemeridce}. One of these interesting primitive insects, namely, Platephemera aiitiqiia (fig. 89), appears to have measured five inches in ex- panse of wing ; and another (Xenoneura antiqiioruui) has attached to its wing the re- mains of a " stridulating- organ " similar to that pos- sessed by the modern Grass- hoppers— the instrument, as Principal Dawson remarks, of " the first music of living things that Geology as yet reveals to us." Amongst the Mollusca, the Devonian rocks have yielded a great number of the remains of Sea-mosses (Polyzod). Some of these belong to the ancient type Ptilodictya, which seems to disappear here, or to the allied Clathropora (fig. 90), with its fenestrated and reticulated fronds. We meet also with the graceful and delicate stems of Ceriopora (fig. 91). The majority of the Devonian Polyzoa belong, however, to the great and important Palaeozoic group of the Lace-corals (Fenestella, figs. 92 and 94, Retepora, fig. 93, Poly pom, and their allies). In all these forms there is a horny skeleton, of a Fig. 89. — Win^ of Platephemera antlqna. Devonian, America. (After Dawson.) 146 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. fan-like or funnel-shaped form, which grew attached by its base to some foreign body. The frond consists of slightly- a Fig. 90. — Fragment of Clnthropora interiexta, of the natura1 size and enlarged. Devonian, Canada. (Original.) Fig. 91. — Fragment of Ceriopora. H amiltonensis, of the natural size and enlarg- ed. Devonian, Canada. (Ori- ginal.) diverging or nearly parallel branches, which are either united by delicate cross-bars, or which bend alternately from side to side, and become directly united with one another at short intervals — in either case giving origin to numerous oval or L. F'g. 92. — Fragment of Fenestella magn:fica, of the natural size and enlarged. Devonian, Canada. (Original.) Fig. 93. — Fragment of Retcpora Phillips!, of the natural size and enlarged. Devonian, Canada. (Ori- ginal.) Fig. 94. — Fragment of Fenestella cribr<"-a, of the natural size and enlarg- ed. Devonian, Canada. (Original.) oblong perforations, which communicate to the whole plant- like colony a characteristic netted and lace-like appearance. On one of its surfaces — sometimes the internal, sometimes the external— the frond carries a number of minute chambers or DEVONIAN AND OLD RED PERIOD. 147 "cells," which are generally borne in rows on the branches, and of which each originally contained a minute animal. The Brachiopods still continue to be represented in great force through all the Devonian deposits, though not occurring in the true Old Red Sandstone. Besides such old types as Orthis, Strophomena, Lingula, Athyris, and Rhynchonella, we find some entirely new ones ; whilst various types which only commenced their existence in the Upper Silurian, now under- go a great expansion and development. This last is especially the case with the two families of the Spiriferida and the Pro- ductida. The Spirifers^ in particular, are especially character- istic of the Devonian, both in the Old and New Worlds — some of the most typical forms, such as Spirifera mucronata (fig. 96), having the shell " winged," or with the lateral angles prolonged Fig- 95- — Spirifera scrclf>tilis. Devonian, C'a- Fig. gb. — Spir'fera mucronata. Devonian, America, nada. (Afler Billings.) (After Killings.) to such an extent as to have earned for them the popular name of " fossil-butterflies." The closely-allied Spirifera disjuncta occurs in Britain, France, Spain, Belgium, Germany, Russia, and China. The family of the Productida commenced to exist in the Upper Silurian, in the genus Chonetes ; and we shall heieafter find it culminating in the Carboniferous in many forms of the great genus Producta* itself. In the Devonian period, there is an intermediate state of things, the genus Chonetes being continued in new and varied types, and the Carboniferous Products being represented by many forms of the allied group Productella. Amongst other well-known De- vonian Brachiopods may be mentioned the two long-lived and persistent types Atrypa reticularis. (fig. 97) and Strophomcna rhomboidalis (fig. 98). The former of these commences in the Upper Silurian, but is more abundantly developed in the De- vonian, having a geographical range that is nothing less than world-wide; whilst the latter commences in the Lower Silurian, * The name of this genus is often written Productns, just as Spirifera is often given in the masculine gender as Spirifer (the name originally given to it). The masculine termination to these names is, however, grammati- cally incorrect, as the feminine noun cochlea (shell) is in these cases under- stood. 148 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. and, with an almost equally cosmopolitan range, survives into the Carboniferous period. Fig. 97. — Atrypa reticularis. Upper Silurian and Devonian of Europe and America. (After Billings.) The Bivalves (Lamellibranchiata) of the Devonian call for no special comment, the genera Pterinea and Megalodon being, Fig. 98. — Strophomena rhomboidalis. Lower Silurian, Upper Silurian, and Devonian of Europe and America. perhaps, the most noticeable. The Univalves (Gasteropods}, also, need not be discussed in detail, though many interesting forms of this group are known. The type most abundantly represented, especially \\\ America, is Platyceras (fig. 99), comprising thin, wide - mouthed shells, probably most nearly allied to the existing "Bonnet-limpets," and sometimes attaining very considerable dimen- sions. We may also note the continuance of the genus Euomphalus, with Fig. 99.— Different views of Platyceras du- its discoidal Spiral shell. mosum, of the natural size. Devonian, Canada. . •, rr , , j (Original.) Amongst the Heteropods, the survival of Bellerophon is to be recorded ; and in the " Winged-snails," or Pteropods, we find new forms of the old genera Teutaculites and Conularia DEVONIAN AND OLD RED PERIOD. 149 (fig. 100). The latter, with its fragile, conical, and often beauti- fully ornamented shell, is especially noticeable. The remains of Cephalopoda are far from uncommon in the Devonian deposits, all the known forms being still Tetrabranchiate. Besides the ancient types Orthoceras and Cyrtoceras, we have now a predominance of the spirally-coiled chambered shells of Goni- atites and Clymenia. In the former of these the shell is shaped like that of the Nautilus ; but the partitions between the chambers ("septa") are more or less lobed, folded, or angulated, and the " siphuncle" runs along the back or con- vex side of the shell — these being char- acters which approximate Goniatites to tiie true Ammonites of the later rocks. In Clymenia, on the other hand, whilst the shell (fig. 101) is coiled into a flat spiral, and the partitions or septa are simple or only slightly lobed, there is still this difference, as compared with the Nautilus, that the tube of the siphuncle is placed on the inner or concave side of the Fig. -Loo.—Conularia or- nata, of the natural size. Devonian, Europe. Fig. 101. — Clymenia Sedgw!ckii. Devonian, Europe. shell. The species of Clymenia are exclusively Devonian in I5O HISTORICAL PAL/EONTOLOGY. their range ; and some of the limestones of this period in Germany are so richly charged with fossils of this genus as to have received the name of-" Clymenien-kalk." The sub-kingdom of the Vertebrates is still represented by Fishes only ; but these are so abundant, and belong to such varied types, that the Devonian period has been appropriately called the " Age of Fishes." Amongst the existing fishes there are three great groups which are of special geological import- ance, as being more or less extensively represented in past time. These groups are : (i) The Bony Fishes (Teleostei], comprising most existing fishes, in which the skeleton is more or less com- pletely converted into bone ; the tail is symmetrically lobed or divided into equal moieties ; and the scales are usually thin, horny, flexible plates, which overlap one another to a greater or less extent. (2) The Ganoid Fishes (Ganoidei), comprising the modern Gar-pikes, Sturgeons, &c., in which the skeleton usually more or less completely retains its primitive soft and cartilaginous condition ; the tail is generally markedly unsym- metrical, being divided into two unequal lobes ; and the scales (when present) have the form of plates of bone, usually cov- ered by a layer of shining enamel. These scales may overlap ; or they may be rhomboidal plates, placed edge to edge in oblique rows ; or they have the form of large-sized bony plates, which are commonly united in the region of the head to form a regular buckler. (3) The Placoid Fishes, or Elasmobranchii, comprising the Sharks, Rays, and Chijncercz of the present day, in which the skeleton is cartilaginous; the tail is unsymmetri- cally lobed ; and the scales have the form of detached bony plates of variable size, scattered in the integument. It is to the two last of these groups that the Devonian fishes belong, and they are more specially referable to the Ganoids. The order of the Ganoid fishes at the present day comprises but some seven or eight genera, the species of which princi- pally or exclusively inhabit fresh waters, and all of which are confined to the northern hemisphere. As compared, there- fore, with the Bony fishes, which constitute the great majority of existing forms, the Ganoids form but an extremely small and limited group. It was far otherwise, however, in Devonian times. At this period, the bony fishes are not known to have come into existence at all, and the Ganoids held almost undis- puted possession of the waters. To what extent the Devonian Ganoids were confined to fresh waters remains yet to be proved ; and that many of them lived in the sea is certain. It was formerly supposed that the Old Red Sandstone of Scotland and Ireland, with its abundant fish-remains, might perhaps be a fresh-water deposit, since the habitat of its fishes is uncer- DEVONIAN AND OLD RED PERIOD. 151 tain, and it contains no indubitable marine fossils. It has been now shown, however, that the marine Devonian strata of Devonshire and the continent of Europe contain some of the most characteristic of the Old Red Sandstone fishes of Scot- land ; whilst the undoubted marine deposit of the Corniferous limestone of North America contains numerous shark-like and Ganoid fishes, including such a characteristic Old Red genus as Coccosteus. There can be little doubt, therefore, but that the majority of the Devonian fishes were truly marine in their habits, though it is probable that many of them lived in shallow water, in the immediate neighbourhood of the shore, or in estuaries. The Devonian Ganoids belong to a number of groups \ and Fig. 102. — Fishes of the Devonian rocks of America, a. Diagram of the jaws and teeth of Dinickthys Hertzeri, viewed from the front, and greatly reduced ; b, Diagram of the skull of Macropetalichthys Srtllivanti, reduced in size ; c, A portion of the enamelled sur- face of the skull of the same, magnified ; d, One of the scales of Onychodus sigmoides, of the iSatural size ; e, One of the front teeth of the lower jaw of the same, of the natural size \f, Fin-spine of Mach&racanthus major, a shark-like fish, reduced in size. (After Newberry.) it is only possible to notice a few of -the most important forms here. The modern group of the Sturgeons is represented, 152 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. more or less remotely, by a few Devonian fishes — such as As- terosteus ; and the great Macropetalichthys of the Corniferous limestone of North America is believed by Newberry to belong to this group, In this fish (fig. 102, b) the skull was of large size, its outer surface being covered with a tuberculated en- amel ; and, as in the existing Sturgeons, the mouth seems to have been wholly destitute of teeth. Somewhat allied, also, to the Sturgeons, is a singular group of armoured fishes, which is highly characteristic of the Devonian of Britain and Europe, and less so of that of America. In these curious forms the head and front extremity of the body were protected by a buckler composed of large enamelled plates, more or less firmly united to one another [whilst the hinder end of the body was naked, or was protected with small scales. Some forms of this group — such as Fteraspis and Coccosteus — date from the Upper Silurian ; but they attain their maximum in the Devo- nian, and none of them are known to pass upwards into the overlying Carboniferous rocks. Amongst the most character- istic forms of this group may be mentioned Cephalaspis (fig. 103) and Ptcrichthys (fig. 104). In the former of these the Fig. 103.— Cephalaspis Lyellii. Old Red Sandstone, Scotland. (After Page.) head-shield is of a crescentic shape, having its hinder angles produced backwards into long " horns," giving it the shape of a "saddler's knife." No teeth have been discovered; but the body was covered with small ganoid scales, and there was an unsymmetrical tail-fin. In Ptcrichthys — which, like the preced- ing, was first brought to light by the labours of Hugh Miller — the whole of the head and the front part of the body were de- fended by a buckler of firmly-united enamelled plates, whilst the rest of the body was covered with small scales. The form of the " pectoral fins " was quite unique — these having the shape of two long, curved spines, somewhat like wings, covered by finely-tuberculated ganoid plates. All the preceding forms DEVONIAN AND OLD RED PERIOD. 153 of this group are of small size ; but few fishes, living or extinct, could rival the proportions of the great Dinichthys, referred to Fig. 104. — Pterickthys cornutus. Old Red Sandstone, Scotland. (After Agassiz.) this family by Newberry. In this huge fish (fig. 102, a) the head alone is over three feet in length, and the body is sup- posed to have been twenty-five or thirty feet long. The head was protected by a massive cuirass of bony plates firmly articu- lated together, but the hinder end of the body seems to have been simply enveloped in a leathery skin. The teeth are of the most formidable description, consisting in both jaws of serrated dental plates behind, and in front of enormous coni- cal tusks (fig. 102, a). Though immensely larger, the teeth of Dinichthys present a curious resemblance to those of the exist- ing Mud-fishes (Lepido siren). In another great group of Devonian Ganoids, we meet with fishes more or less closely allied to the living Polypteri (fig. 105) of the Nile and Senegal. In this group (fig. 106) the pectoral fins consist of a central scaly lobe carrying the fin- rays on both sides, the scales being sometimes rounded and overlapping (fig. 106), or more commonly rhomboidal and placed edge to edge (fig. 105, A). Numerous forms of these " Fringe-finned " Ganoids occur in the Devonian strata, such as Holoptychius, Glyptolcenms, Osteolepis, Phanerophuron, &c. To this group is also to be ascribed the huge Onychodus (fig. 102, //and e), with its large, rounded, overlapping scales, an inch in diameter, and its powerful pointed teeth. It is to be remembered, however, that some of these " Fringe -finned" Ganoids are probably referable to the small but singular group of the " Mud-fishes " (Dipnoi), represented at the present day by the singular Lepidosiren of South America and Africa, and the^Ceratadus of the rivers of Queensland. Leaving the Ganoid fishes, it still remains to be noticed that the Devonian deposits have yielded the remains of a number of fishes more or less closely allied to the existing Sharks, 154 HISTORICAL PAL/EONTOLOGV. Rays, and Chimcerce (the Elasmobranchii). The majority of the forms here alluded to are allied not to the true Sharks and Fig. 105. — A, Polypterns, a recent Ganoid fish ; B, Osteolefis, a Devonian Ganoid ; a a, Pectoral fins, showing the fin-rays arranged round a central lobs. Dog-fishes, but to the more peaceable " Port Jackson Sharks," with their blunt teeth, adapted for crushing the shells of Mol- luscs. The collective name of " Cestracionts " is applied to these ; and we have evidence of their past existence in the Fig. 106. — H oloptychiits nobilissimus, restored. Old Red Sandstone, Scotland. A, Scale of the same. Devonian seas both by their teeth, and by the defensive spines which were implanted in front of a greater or less number of the fins. These are bony spines, often variously grooved, serrated, or ornamented, with hollow bases, implanted in the integument, and capable of being erected or depressed at will. DEVONIAN AND OLD RED PERIOD. 155 Many of these " fin-spines " have been preserved to us in the fossil condition, and the Devonian rocks have yielded examples belonging to many genera. As some of the true Sharks and Dog-fishes, some of the Ganoids, and even some Bony Fishes, possess similar defences, it is often a matter of some uncer- tainty to what group a given spine is to be referred. One of these spines, belonging to the genus Machar acanthus, from the Devonian rocks of America, has been figured in a previous illustration (fig. io2,/). In conclusion, a very few words may be said as to the validity of the Devonian series as an independent system of rocks, preserving in its successive strata the record of an independent system of life. Some high authorities have been inclined to the view that the Devonian formation has in nature no actual existence, but that it is made up partly of beds which should be referred to the summit of the Upper Silurian, and partly of beds which properly belong to the base of the Carboniferous. This view seems to have been arrived at in consequence of a too exclusive study of the Devonian series of the British Isles, where the physical succession is not wholly clear, and where there is a striking discrepancy between the organic remains of those two members of the series which are known as the "Old Red 'Sandstone" and the "Devonian'"' rocks proper. This discrepancy, however, is not complete ; and, as we have seen, can be readily explained on the sup- position that the one group of rocks presents us with the shallow water and littoral deposits of the period, while in the other we are introduced to the deep-sea accumulations of the same period. Nor can the problem at issue be solved by an appeal to the phenomena of the British area alone, be the testimony of these what it may. As a matter of fact, there is at present no sufficient ground for believing that there is any irreconcilable discordance between the succession of rocks and of life in Britain during the period which elapsed between the deposition of the Upper Ludlow and the formation of the Carboniferous Limestone, and the order of the same phe- nomena during the same period in other regions. Some of the Devonian types of life, as is the case with all great forma- tions, have descended unchanged from older types ; others pass upwards unchanged to the succeeding period : but the fauna and flora of the Devonian period are, as a whole, quite distinct from those of the preceding Silurian or the succeeding Carboniferous ; and they correspond to an equally distinct rock-system, which in point of time holds an intermediate position between the two great groups just mentioned. As HISTORICAL PAL/EONTOLOGY. before remarked, this conclusion may be regarded as suffi- ciently proved even by the phenomena of the British area ; but it may be said to be rendered a certainty by the study of the Devonian deposits of the continent of Europe — or, still more, by the investigation of the vast, for the most part un- interrupted and continuous series of sediments which com- menced to be laid down in North America at the beginning of the Upper Silurian, and did not cease till, at any rate, the close of the Carboniferous. LITERATURE. The following list comprises the more important works and memoirs to which the student of Devonian rocks and fossils may refer : — (1) ' Siluria.' Sir Roderick Murchison. (2) 'Geology of Russia in Europe.' Murchison (together with De Verneuil and Count von Keyserling). (3) " Classification of the Older Rocks of Devon and Cornwall " — ' Proc. Geol. Soc.,' vol. iii., 1839. Sedgwick and Murchison. (4) " On the Physical Structure of Devonshire ;" and on the " Classifi- cation of the Older Stratified Rocks of Devonshire and Cornwall " — 'Trans. Geol. Soc.,' vol. v., 1840. Sedgwick and Murchison. (5) " On the Distribution and Classification of the Older or Palaeozoic Rocks of North Germany and Belgium" — ' Geol. Trans.,' 2d ser., vol. vi., 1842. Sedgwick and Murchison. (6) ' Report on the Geology of Cornwall, Devon, and West Somerset.' De la Beche. (7) 'Memoirs of the Geological Survey of Ireland and Scotland.' Jukes and Geikie. (8) "On the Carboniferous Slate (or Devonian Rocks) and the Old Red Sandstone of South Ireland and North Devon" — 'Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. xxii. Jukes. (9) " On the Physical Structure of West Somerset and North Devon ; " and on the " Pal?eontological Value of Devonian Fossils" — 'Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. iii. Etheridge. (10) " On the Connection of the Lower, Middle, and Upper Old Red Sandstone of Scotland" — 'Trans. Edin. Geol. Soc.,' vol. i. part ii. Powrie. (11) 'The Old Red Sandstone,' 'The Testimony of the Rocks,' and ' Footprints of the Creator.' Hugh Miller. (12) " Report on the 4th Geological District" — ' Geology of New York,' vol. iv. James Hall. (13) 'Geology of Canada,' 1863. Sir W. E. Logan. (14) ' Acadian Geology. ' Dawson. (15) ' Manual of Geology.' Dana. (16) ' Geological Survey of Ohio,' vol. i. (17) 'Geological Survey of Illinois,' vol. i. (18) 'Palaeozoic Fossils of Cornwall, Devon, and West Somerset.' Phillips. (19) ' Recherches sur les Poissons Fossiles.' Agassiz. (20) ' Poissons de 1'Old Red.' Agassiz. (21) "On the Classification of Devonian Fishes" — 'Mem. Geol. Survey of Great Britain,' Decac e X. Huxley. THE CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD. 157 (22) ' Monograph of the Fishes of the Old Red Sandstone of Britain.' (Palaeontographical Society). Powrie and Lankester. (23) ' Fishes of the Devonian System, Palaeontology of Ohio.' New- berry. (24) ' Monograph of British Trilobites ' (Palaeontographical Society). Salter. (25) ' Monograph of British Merostomata ' (Palgeontographical Society). Henry Woodward. (26) ' Monograph of British Brachiopoda ' (Palaeontographical Society). Davidson. (27) ' Monograph of British Fossil Corals' (Palseontographical Society). Milne-Edwards and Haime. (28) ' Polypiers Foss. des Terrains Paleozoiques. ' Milne-Edwards and Jules Haime. (29) " Devonian Fossils of Canada West " — ' Canadian Journal,' new ser., vols. iv.-vi. Billings. (30) 'Palaeontology of New York,' vol. iv. James Hall. (31) 'Thirteenth, Fifteenth, and Twenty-third Annual Reports on the State Cabinet.' James Hall. (32) ' Palaeozoic Fossils of Canada,' vol. ii. Billings. (33) ' Reports on the Palaeontology of the Province of Ontario for 1874 and 1875.' Nicholson. (34) " The Fossil Plants of the Devonian and Upper Silurian Formations of Canada" — ' Geol. Survey of Canada. ' Dawson. (35) ' Petrefacta Germaniae.' Gold fuss. (36) ' Versteinerungen der Grauwacken -formation.' &c. Geinitz. (37) ' Beitrag zur Palaeontologie des Thiiringer-Waldes.' Richter and Unger. (38) ' Ueber die Placodermen der Devonischen System.' Pander. (39) ' Die Gattungen der Fossilen Pflanzen.' Gceppert. (40) ' Genera et Species Plantarum Fossilium.' Unger. CHAPTER XII. THE CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD. Overlying the Devonian formation is the great and import- ant series of the Carboniferous Rocks, so called because workable beds of coal are more commonly and more largely developed in this formation than in any other. Workable coal-seams, however, occur in various other formations (Jurassic, Cretace- ous, Tertiary), so that coal is not an exclusively Carboniferous product ; whilst even in the Coal-measures themselves the coal bears but a very small proportion to the total thickness of strata, occurring only in comparatively thin beds intercalated in a great series of sandstones, shales, and other genuine aqueous sediments. 12 158 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. Stratigraphically, the Carboniferous rocks usually repose conformably upon the highest Devonian beds, so that the line of demarcation between the Carboniferous and Devonian for- mations is principally a palaeontological one, founded on the observed differences in the fossils of the two groups. On the other hand, the close of the Carboniferous period seems to have been generally, though not universally, signalised by movements of the crust of the earth, so that the succeeding Permian beds often lie unconformably upon the Carboniferous sediments. Strata of Carboniferous age have been discovered in almost every large land-area which has been sufficiently investigated ; but they are especially largely developed in Britain, in various parts of the continent of Europe, and in North America. Their general composition, however, is, comparatively speak- ing, so uniform, that it will suffice to take a comprehensive view of the formation without considering any one area in detail, though in each region the subdivisions of the formation are known by distinctive local names. Taking such a com- prehensive view, it is found that the Carboniferous series is generally divisible into a Lower and essentially calcareous group (the "Sub-Carboniferous" or "Carboniferous Lime- stone ") ; a Middle and principally arenaceous group (the " Millstone Grit"); and an Upper group, of alternating shales and sandstones, with workable seams of coal (the " Coal- measures "). I. The Carboniferous, Sub- Carboniferous, or Mountain Lime- stone Series constitutes the general base of the Carboniferous system. As typically developed in Britain, the Carboniferous Limestone is essentially a calcareous formation, sometimes consisting of a mass of nearly pure limestone from 1000 to 2000 feet in thickness, or at other times of successive great beds of limestone with subordinate sandstones and shales. In the north of England the base of the series consists of pebbly conglomerates and coarse sandstones; and in Scot- land generally, the group is composed of massive sandstones with a comparatively feeble development of the calcareous element. In Ireland, again, the base of the Carboniferous Limestone is usually considered to be formed by a locally- developed group of grits and shales (the " Coomhola Grits " and "Carboniferous Slate"), which attain the thickness of about 5000 feet, and contain an intermixture of Devonian with Carboniferous types of fossils. Seeing that the Devonian formation is generally conformable to the Carboniferous, we need feel no surprise at this intermixture of forms ; nor does it THE CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD. 159 appear to be of great moment whether these strata be referred to the former or to the latter series. Perhaps the most satis- factory course is to regard the Coomhola Grits and Carbon- iferous Slates as " passage-beds " between the Devonian and Carboniferous ; but any view that may be taken as to the position of these beds, really leaves unaffected the integrity of the Devonian series as a distinct life-system, which, on the whole, is more closely allied to the Silurian than to the Car- boniferous. In North America, lastly, the Sub-Carboniferous series is never purely calcareous, though in the interior of the continent it becomes mainly so. In other regions, however, it consists principally of shales and sandstones, with subor- dinate beds of limestone, and sometimes with thin beds of coal or deposits of clay-ironstone. II. The Millstone Grit,— The highest beds of the Carbon- iferous Limestone series are succeeded, generally with perfect conformity, by a series of arenaceous beds, usually known as the Millstone Grit. As typically developed in Britain, this group consists of hard quartzose sandstones, often so large- grained and coarse in texture as to properly constitute fine conglomerates. In other cases there are regular conglomer- ates, sometimes with shales, limestones, and thin beds of coal — the thickness of the whole series, when well developed, varying from 1000 to 5000 feet. In North America, the Millstone Grit rarely reaches 1000 feet in thickness ; and, like its Brit- ish equivalent, consists of coars.e sandstones and grits, some- times with regular conglomerates. Whilst the Carboniferous Limestone was undoubtedly deposited in a tranquil ocean .of considerable depth, the coarse mechanical sediments of the Millstone Grit indicate the progressive shallowing of the Carboniferous seas, and the consequent supervention of shore-conditions. III. The Coal-measures. — The Coal-measures properly so called rest conformably upon the Millstone Grit, and usually consist of a vast series of sandstones, shales, grits, and coals, sometimes with beds of limestone, attaining in some regions a total thickness of from 7000 to nearly 14,000 feet. Beds of workable coal are by no means unknown in some areas in the inferior group of the Sub-Carboniferous; but the general state- ment is true, that coal is mostly obtained from the true Coal- measures — the largest known, and at present most produc- tive coal-fields of the world being in Great Britain, North America, and Belgium. Wherever they are found, with limited exceptions, the Coal - measures present a singular general uniformity of mineral composition. They consist, 1 00 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. namely, of an indefinite alternation of beds of sandstone, shale, and coal, sometimes with bands of clay-ironstone or beds of limestone, repeated in no constant order, but sometimes attaining the enormous aggregate thickness of 14,000 feet, or little short of 3 miles. The beds of coal differ in number and thickness in different areas, but they seldom or never exceed one-fiftieth part of the total bulk of the formation in thickness. The characters of the coal itself, and the way in which the coal-beds were deposited, will be briefly alluded to in speaking of the vegetable life of the period. In Britain, and in the Old World generally, the Coal-measures are composed partly' of genuine terrestrial deposits — such as the coal — and partly of sediments accumulated in the fresh or brackish waters of vast lagoons," estuaries, and marshes. The fossils of the Coal- measures in these regions are therefore necessarily the remains either of terrestrial plants and animals, or of such forms of life as inhabit fresh or brackish waters, the occurrence of strata with marine fossils being quite a local and occasional phe- nomenon. In various parts of North America, on the other hand, the Coal-measures, in addition to sandstones, shales, coal-seams, and bands of clay-ironstone, commonly include beds of limestone, charged with marine remains, and indicating marine conditions. The subjoined section (fig. 107) gives, in a generalised form, the succession of the Carboniferous strata in such a British area as the north of England, where the series is developed in a typical form. As regards the life of the Carboniferous period, we naturally find, as has been previously noticed, great differences in dif- ferent parts of the entire series, corresponding to the different mode of origin of the beds. Speaking generally, the Lower Carboniferous (or the Sub-Carboniferous) is characterised by the remains of marine animals ; whilst the Upper Carbon- iferous (or Coal-measures) is characterised by the remains of plants and terrestrial animals. In all those cases, how- ever, in which marine beds are found in the series of the Coal-measures, as is common in America, then we find that the fossils agree in their general characters with those of the older marine deposits of the period. Owing to the fact that coal is simply compressed and other- wise altered vegetable matter, and that it is of the highest economic value to man, the Coal-measures have been more thoroughly explored than any other group of strata of equiva- lent thickness in the entire geological series. Hence we have already a very extensive acquaintance with the plants of the Carboniferous period ; and our knowledge on this subject is THE CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD. l6l daily undergoing increase. It is not to be supposed, however, that the remains of plants are found solely in the Coal> GENERALISED SECTION OF THE CARBONIFEROUS STRATA OF THE NORTH OF ENGLAND. Fig. 107. 13 8-* •< o u £::* : W \"> I* :•::••-. ?».#....••• "% " ii '" .v fli "u" »".."\.3S; I. " I, » " ti „ '» ,.« ,,» u » i. » _1J — U — u ii h ii ii n n ir II II Permian (New Red Sand- stone). — Coal-measures. - Millstone Grit. Yoredale Series. — Scar-Limestone Series. Basement r>eds (Conglom- erates and Sandstones). measures ; for though most abundant towards the summit, they are found in less numbers in all parts of the series. Wherever found, they belong to the same great types of vege- 1 62 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. tation ; but, before reviewing these, a few words must be said as to the origin and mode of formation of coal. The coal-beds, as before mentioned, occur interstratified with shales, sandstones, and sometimes limestones ; and there may, within the limits of a single coal-field, be as many as 80 or 100 of such beds, placed one above the other at different levels, and varying in thickness from a few inches up to 20 or 30 feet. As a general rule, each bed of coal rests upon a bed of shale or clay, which is termed the "under-day," and in which are found numerous roots of plants ; whilst the strata immediately on the top of the coal may be shaly or sandy, but in either case are generally charged with the leaves and stems of plants, and often have upright trunks passing vertically through them. When we add to this that the coal itself is, chemically, nearly wholly composed of carbon, and that its microscopic structure shows it to be composed almost entirely of fragments of stems, leaves, bark, seeds, and vegetable debris derived from land-plants, we are readily enabled to understand how the coal was formed. The "under -day" immediately beneath the coal-bed represents an old land-surface — some- times, perhaps, the bottom of a swamp or marsh, covered with a luxuriant vegetation ; the coal bed itself represents the slow accumulation, through long periods, of the leaves, seeds, fruits, stems, and fallen trunks of this vegetation, now hardened and compressed into a fraction of its original bulk by the pres- sure of the superincumbent rocks ; and the strata of sand or shale above the coal-bed — the so-called "roof" of the coal- represent sediments quietly deposited as the land, after a long period of repose, commenced to sink beneath the sea. On this view, the rank and long-continued vegetation which gave rise to each coal-bed was ultimately terminated by a slow depression of the surface on which the plants grew. The land-surface then became covered by the water, and aqueous sediments were accumulated to a greater or less thickness upon the dense mass of decaying vegetation below, enveloping any trunks of trees which might still be in an erect position, and preserving between their layers the leaves and branches of plants brought down from the neighbouring land by streams, or blown into the water by the wind. Finally, there set in a slow movement of elevation, — the old land again reappeared above the water ; a new and equally luxuriant vegetation flourished upon the new land-surface ; and another coal-bed was accumulated, to be preserved ultimately in a similar fashion. Some few beds of coal may have been formed by drifted vegetable matter brought down into the ocean by rivers, THE CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD. 163 and deposited directly on the bottom of the sea ; but in the majority of cases the coal is undeniably the result of the slow growth and decay of plants in situ; and as the plants of the coal are not marine plants, it is necessary to adopt some such theory as the above to account for the formation of coal- seams. By this theory, as is obvious, we are compelled to suppose that the vast alluvial and marshy flats upon which the coal-plants grew were liable to constantly-recurring oscillations of level, the successive land-surfaces represented by the suc- cessive coal-beds of any coal-field being thus successively buried beneath accumulations of mud or sand. We have no need, however, to suppose that these oscillations affected large areas at the same time ; and geology teaches us that local elevations and depressions of the land have been matters of constant occurrence throughout the whole of past time. All the varieties of coal (bituminous coal, anthracite, cannel- coal, &c.) show a more or less distinct "lamination" — that is to say, they are more or less obviously composed of successive thin layers, differing slightly in colour and texture. All the varieties of coal, clso, consist chemically of carbon, with vary- ing proportions of certain gaseous constituents and a small amount of incombustible mineral or " ash." By cutting thin and transparent slices of coal, we are further enabled, by means of the microscope, to ascertain precisely not only that the carbon of the coal is derived from vegetables, but also, in many cases, what kinds of plants, and what parts of these, enter into the formation of coal. When examined in this way, all coals are found to consist more or less entirely of vegetable matter; but there is considerable difference in different coals as to the exact nature of this. By Professor Huxley it has been shown that many of the English coals consist largely of ac- cumulations of rounded discoidal sacs or bags, which are unquestionably the seed-vessels or " spore-cases " of certain of the commoner coal-plants (such as the Lepidodend.ro] . The best bituminous coals seem to be most largely composed of these spore-cases ; whilst inferior kinds possess a progressively increasing amount of the dull carbonaceous substance which is known as "mineral charcoal," and which is undoubtedly com- posed of " the stems and leaves of plants reduced to little more than their carbon, " On the other hand, Principal Daw- son finds that the American coals only occasionally exhibit spore-cases to any extent, but consist principally of the cells, vessels, and fibres of the bark, integumentary coverings, and woody portions of the Carboniferous plants. The number of plants already known to have existed during 1 64 HISTORICAL PAL/EONTOLOGY. the Carboniferous period is so great, that nothing more can be done here than to notice briefly the typical and characteristic groups of these — such as the Ferns, the Catamites, the Lepido- dendroids, the Sigillarioids, and the Conifers. In accordance with M. Brongniart's generalisation, that the Palaeozoic period is, botanically speaking, the "Age of Acrogens," we find the Carboniferous plants to be still mainly referable to the Flowerless or " Cryptogamous " division of the vegetable kingdom. The flowering or " Phanerogamous " plants, which form the bulk of our existing vegetation, are hardly known, with certainty, to have existed at all in the Carbon- iferous era, except as represented by trees related to the existing Fig. 108. — Odontopteris Schlotheimii. Carboniferous, Europe and North America. Pines and Firs, and possibly by the Cycads or "false palms."* Amongst the " Cryptogams," there is no more striking or beautiful group of Carboniferous plants than the Ferns. .Re- mains of these are found all through the Carboniferous, but in exceptional numbers in the Coal-measures, and include both herbaceous forms like the majority of existing species, and arborescent forms resembling the living Tree-ferns of New Zealand. Amongst the latter, together with some new types, are examples of the genera Psaronius and Caulopteris, both of * Whilst the vegetation of the Coal-period was mainly a terrestrial one, aquatic plants are not unknown. Sea-weeds (such as the Spirophyton cauda-Galli) are common in some of the marine strata ; whilst coal, according to the researches of the Abbe Castracane, is asserted commonly to contain the siliceous envelopes of Diatoms. THE CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD. 165 which date from the Devonian. The simply herbaceous ferns are extremely numerous, and belong to such widely-distributed Fig. 109. — Calamites cannesformis. Carboniferous Rocks, Europe and North America. and largely-represented genera as Neuropteris, Odontopteris (fig. 1 08), Alethopteris, Pecopteris, Sphenopteris, Hymenophyllites, &c. The fossils known as Calamites (fig. 109) are very common 1 66 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. in the Carboniferous deposits, and have given occasion to an abundance of research and speculation. They present them- selves as prostrate and flattened striated stems, or as similar uncompressed stems growing in an erect position, and some- times attaining a length of twenty feet or more. Externally, the stems are longitudinally ribbed, with transverse joints at regular intervals, these joints giving origin to a whorl of branchlets, which may or may not give origin to similar whorls of smaller branchlets still. The stems, further, were hollow, with trans- verse partitions at the joints, and having neither true wood nor bark, but only a thin external fibrous shell. There can be little doubt but that the Catamites are properly regarded as colossal representatives of the little Horse-tails (Equisetacece) of the present day. They agree with these not only in the general details of their organisation, but also in the fact that the fruit was a species of cone, bearing "spore-cases" under scales. According to Principal Dawson, the Catamites " grew in dense brakes on the sandy and muddy flats, subject to inundation, or perhaps even in water ; and they had the power of budding out from the base of the stem, so as to form clumps of plants, and also of securing their foothold by numerous cord-like roots proceeding from various heights on the lower part of the stem." The Lepidodendroids, represented mainly by the genus Lepidodendron itself (fig. no), were large tree-like plants, which attain their maximum in the Carboniferous period, but which appear to commence in the Upper Silurian, are well represented in the Devonian, and survive in a diminished form into the Permian. The trunks of the larger species of Lepido- dendron at times reach a length of fifty feet and upwards, giv- ing off branches in a regular bifurcating manner. The bark is marked with numerous rhombic or oval scars, arranged in quincunx order, and indicating the points where the long, needle-shaped leaves were formerly attached. The fruit con- sisted of cones or spikes, carried at the ends of the branches, and consisting of a central axis surrounded by overlapping scales, each of which supports a " spore-case " or seed-vessel. These cones have commonly been described under the name of Lepidostrobi. In the structure of the trunk there is nothing comparable to what is found in existing trees, there being a thick bark surrounding a zone principally composed of "scalariform" vessels, this in turn enclosing a large central pith. In their general appearance the Lepidodendra bring to mind the existing Araucarian Pines ; but they are true " Crypto- gams," and are to be regarded as a g'gantic extinct type of the THE CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD. I67 modern Club-mosses (Lyeopodiacea). They are amongst the commonest and most characteristic of the Carboniferous Fig. no. — Lepidodendron Sternbergii, Carboniferous, Europe. The central figrtre represents a portion ol tne trunk with its branches, much reduced in size. The right- hand figure is a portion of a branch with the leaves partially attached to it ; and the left- hand figure represents the end of a branch bearing a cone of fructification, v plants; and the majority of the "spore-cases" so commonly found in the coal appear to have been derived from the cones of Lepidodendroids. 1 68 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. The so-called Sigiltarioids, represented mainly by Sigillaria itself (fig. in), were no less abundant and characteristic of the Carboniferous forests than the Lepidodendra. They commence their existence, so far as known, in the Devonian period, but they attain their maximum in the Carboniferous ; and — unlike the Lepidodendroids — they are not known to occur in the Permian period. They are comparatively gigantic in size, often attaining a height of from thirty to fifty feet or more ; but though abundant and well preserved, great divergence of opinion prevails as to their true affinities. The name of Sigil- larioids (Lat. sigilla, little seals or images) is derived from the fact that the bark is marked with seal-like impressions or leaf- scars (fig. in). Externally, the trunks of Sigillaria present strong longitudinal ridges, with vertical alternating rows of oval leaf- scars indicating Fig. in. — Fragment of the external surface of Sigillaria Grcesen, showing the ribs and leaf-scars. The left-hand figure represents a small portion enlarged. Carboniferous, Europe. the points where the leaves were originally attached. The trunk was furnished with a large central pith, a thick outer bark, and an intermediate woody zone, — composed, according to Dawson, partly of the disc-bearing fibres so characteristic of Conifers ; but, according to Carruthers, entirely made up of the " scalari- form " vessels characteristic of Cryptogams. The size of the pith was very great, and the bark seems to have been the most durable portion of the trunk. Thus we have evidence that in many cases the stumps and "stools" of Sigilfaria, standing THE CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD. 169 upright in the old Carboniferous swamps, were completely hollowed out by internal decay, till nothing but an exterior shell of bark was left. Often these hollow stumps became ultimately filled up with sediment, sometimes enclosing the remains of galley-worms, land- snails, or Amphibians, which formerly found in the cavity of the trunk a congenial home ; and from the sandstone or shale now filling such trunks some of the most interesting fossils of the Coal-period have been obtained. There is little certainty as to either the leaves or fruits of SigiJfaria, and there is equally little certainty as to the true botanical position of these plants. By Principal Dawson they are regarded as being probably flowering plants allied to the existing " false palms" or " Cycads ;" but the high author- ity of Mr Carruthers is to be quoted in support of the belief that they are Cryptogamic, and most nearly allied to the Club- mosses. Leaving the botanical position of Sigillaria thus undecided, we find that it is now almost universally conceded that the fossils originally described under the name of Stigmaria are the roots of Sigillaria, the actual connection between the two having been in numerous instances demonstrated in an unmis- takable manner. The Stigmaricz (fig. 112) ordinarily present themselves in the form of long, compressed or rounded frag- Fig. 112. — Stigmaria ficoides. Quarter natural size. Carboniferous. ments, the external surface of which is covered with rounded pits or shallow tubercles, each of which has a little pit or de- pression in its centre. From each of these pits there proceeds, in perfect examples, a long cylindrical rootlet ; but in many cases these have altogether disappeared. In their internal structure, Stigmaria exhibits a central pith surrounded by a sheath of scalariform vessels, the whole enclosed in a cellular envelope. The Stigmarice are generally found ramifying in 1 70 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. the "under-day," which forms the floor of a bed of coal, and which represents the ancient soil upon which the Sigillarice grew. The Lepidodendroids and Sigillarioids, though the first were certainly, and the second possibly, Cryptogamic or flowerless plants, must have constituted the main mass of the forests of the Coal period; but we are not without evidence of the exist- ence at the same time of genuine " trees," in the technical sense of this term — namely, flowering plants with large woody stems. So far as is certainly known, all the true trees of the Carboniferous formation were Conifers, allied to the existing Pines and Firs. They are recognised by the great size and . concentric woody rings of their prostrate, rarely erect trunks, and by the presence of disc-bearing fibres in their wood, as demonstrated by the microscope; and the principal genera which have been recognised are Dadoxylon, Palceoxyloti, Arancarioxylon, and Pinites. Their fruit is not known with absolute certainty, unless it be represented, as often conjectured, by Trigonocarpon (fig. 113). The fruits known under this name 'are nut-like, often of consider- able size, and commonly three- or six- angled. They probably originally pos- sessed a fleshy envelope ; and if truly referable to the Conifers, they would indicate that these ancient evergreens produced berries instead of cones, and thus resembled the modern Yews rather than the Pines. It seems, further, that the great group of the Cycads, which are nearly allied to the Conifers, and which attained such a striking prominence in the Secondary period, probably commenced its existence during the Coal period ; but these anticipatory forms are comparatively few in number, and for the most part of somewhat dubious affinities. CHAPTER XIII. THE CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD— Continued. ANIMAL LIFE OF THE CARBONIFEROUS. We have seen that there exists a great difference as to the mode of origin of the Carboniferous sediments, some being purely marine, whilst others are terrestrial; and others, again, THE CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD. I/ 1 have been formed in inland swamps and morasses, or in brack- ish-water lagoons, creeks, or estuaries. A corresponding dif- ference exists necessarily in the animal remains of these de- posits, and in many regions this difference is extremely well marked and striking. The great marine limestones which characterise the lower portion of the Carboniferous series in Britain, Europe, and the eastern portion of America, and the calcareous beds which are found high up in the Carboniferous in the western States of America, may, and do, often contain the remains of drifted plants ; but they are essentially charac- terised by marine fossils; and, moreover, they can be demon- strated by the microscope to be almost wholly composed of the remains of animals which formerly inhabited the ocean. On the other hand, the animal remains of the beds accompany- ing the coal are typically the remains of air-breathing, terres- trial, amphibious, or aerial animals, together with those which inhabit fresh or brackish waters. Marine fossils may be found in the Coal-measures, but they are invariably confined to spe- cial horizons in the strata, and they indicate temporary depres- sions of the land beneath the sea. Whilst the distinction here mentioned is one which cannot fail to strike the observer, it is convenient to consider the animal life of the Carboniferous as a whole : and it is simply necessary, in so doing, to remember that the marine fossils are in general derived from the inferior portion of the system; whilst the air-breathing, fresh-water, and brackish- water forms are almost exclusively derived from the superior portion of the same. The Carboniferous Protozoans consist mainly of Foramini- fera and Sponges. The latter are still very insufficiently known, but the former are very abundant, and belong to very varied types. Thin slices of the limestones of the period, when ex- amined by the microscope, very commonly exhibit the shells of Foraminifera in greater or less plenty. Some limestones, indeed, are made up of little else than these minute and elegant shells, often belonging to types, such as the Textularians and Rotalians, differing little or not at all from those now in exist- ence. This is the case, for example, with the Carboniferous Limestone of Spergen Hill in Indiana (fig. 114), which is almost wholly made up of the spiral shells of a species of Endothyra. In the same way, though to a less extent, the black Carboniferous marbles of Ireland, and the similar mar- bles pf Yorkshire, the limestones of the west of England and of Derbyshire, and the great " Scar Limestones " of the north of England, contain great numbers of Foraminiferous shells ; whilst similar organisms commonly occur in the shale-beds 1/2 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY; Fig. 114. — Transparent slice of Carbon- iferous Limestone, from Spergen Hill, In- diana, U.S., showing numerous shells of Endothyra(Rotalia), BnLeyi slightly en- larged. (Original.) associated with the limestones throughout the Lower Carbon- iferous series. One of the most interesting of the British Car- boniferous forms is the Sac- cammina of Mr Henry Brady, which is sometimes present in considerable numbers in the limestones of Northumberland, Cumberland, and the west of Scotland, and which is con- spicuous for the comparatively large size of its spheroidal or pear - shaped shell (reaching from an eighth to a fifth of an inch in size). More widely dis- tributed are the generally spin- dle-shaped shells of Fusulina (fig. 115), which occur in vast numbers in the Carboniferous Limestone 'of Russia, Arme- nia, the Southern Alps, and Spain, similar forms occurring in equal profusion in the higher limestones which are found in the Coal-measures of the United States, in Ohio, Illinois, Indiana, Missouri, &c. Mr Henry Brady, lastly, has shown that we have in the Nummulina pristina of the Carboniferous Limestone of Namur a genuine Nummu- lite, precursor of the great and important family of the Tertiary Nummulites. The sub-kingdom of the Ccelenterates, so far as certainly known, is represented only by Corals;* but the remains of these are so abundant in many of the limestones of the Car- boniferous formation as to constitute a feature little or not at all less conspicuous than that afforded by the Crinoids. As is the case in the preceding period, the Corals belong, almost exclusively, to the groups of the Rugosa and Tabidata; and there is a general and striking resemblance and relationship between the coral-fauna of the Devonian as a whole, and that * A singular fossil has been described by Professor Martin Duncan and Mr Jenkins from the Carboniferous rocks under the name of Palaocoryne, and has been referred to the Hydroid Zoophytes (Corynida). Doubt, however, has been thrown by other observers on the correctness of this reference. Fig. 115. — Fusulina cylindrica, Carbon- iferous Limestone, Russia. THE CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD. 173 of the Carboniferous. Nevertheless, there is an equally decid- ed and striking amount of difference between these successive faunas, due to the fact that the great majority of the Carbon- iferous species are new ; whilst some of the most characteristic Devonian genera have nearly or quite disappeared, and several new genera now make their appearance for the first time. Thus, the characteristic Devonian types Heliophyllum, Pachy- phyllum, Chonophyllum, Acervnlaria, Spongophyllum, Smithia, Endophyllum, and Cystiphyllum, have now disappeared; and the great masses of Favosites which are such a striking feature in the Devonian limestones, are represented but by one or two degenerate and puny successors. On the other hand, we meet in the Carboniferous rocks not only with entirely new genera — such as Axophyllum, Lophophyllum, and Londsdaleia — but we have an enormous expansion of certain types which had just begun to exist in the preceding period. This is especially well seen in the case of the genus Lithostrotion (fig. 116, b], which more than any other may be considered as the predo- minant Carboniferous group of Corals. All the species of Lithostrotion are compound, consisting either of bundles of loosely-approximated cylindrical stems, or of similar "coral- lites" closely aggregated together into astraeiform colonies, and rendered polygonal by mutual pressure. This genus has a historical interest, as having been noticed as early as in the year 1699 by Edward Lhwyd; and it is geologically important from its wide distribution in the Carboniferous rocks of both the Old and New Worlds. Many species are known, and whole beds of limestone are often found to be composed of little else than the skeletons of these ancient corals, still standing upright as they grew. Hardly less characteristic of the Carboniferous than the above is the great group of simple " cup-corals," of which Clisiophyllum is the central type. Amongst types which commenced in the Silurian and Devonian, but which are still well represented here, may be mentioned Syringopora (fig. 116, side-view of the body ("calyx") ; B, The same viewed from below, showing the arrangement of the plates ; C, Body of Pentrenutes ccnoideus, viewed from above. Carboniferous. have commenced its existence in the Upper Silurian, and it increased considerably in numbers in the Devonian ; but it was in the seas of the Carboniferous period that it attained its maximum, and no certain representative of the family has been detected in any later deposits. The " Pentremites " resemble the Crinoids in having a cup-shaped body (fig. 118, A) enclosed by closely-fitting calcareous plates, and supported on a short stem or " column," composed of numerous calcareous pieces flexibly articulated together. They differ from the Crinoids, however, in the fact that the upper surface of the body does not support the crown of branched feathery " arms/' which are so characteristic of the latter. On the contrary, the summit of the cup is closed up in the fashion of a flower-bud, whence the technical name of Blastoidea applied to the group (Gr. blastos, a bud ; eidos, form). From the top of the cup radiate five broad, transversely-striated areas (fig. 118, C). each with a longitudi- nal groove down its middle; and along each side of each of THE CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD. 177 these grooves there seems to have been attached a row of short jointed calcareous filaments or " pinnules." A few Star-fishes and Brittle-stars are known to occur in the Carboniferous rocks ; but the only other Echinoderms of this period which need be noticed are the Sea-urchins (Echinoid$). Detached plates and spines of these are far from rare in the Carboniferous deposits \ but anything like perfect specimens are exceedingly scarce. The Carboniferous Sea-urchins agree with those of the present day in having the body enclosed in a shell, formed by an enormous number of calcareous plates articulated together. The shell may be regarded as, typically, nearly spherical in shape, with the mouth in the centre of the base, and the excretory opening or vent at its summit. In both the ancient forms and the recent ones, the plates of the shell Fig. 119. — PaZtzckinus ellipticns, one of the Carboniferous Sea-urchins. Tlte left- hand figure shows one of the "ambulacral areas " enlarged, exhibiting the perforated plates. The right-} and figure exhibits a single plate from one of the "inter-ambtilacral areas." (After M'Coy.) are arranged in ten zones which generally radiate from the summit to the centre of the base. In five of these zones — termed the " ambulacral areas " — the plates are perforated by minute apertures or " pores," through which the animal can protrude the little water-tubes (" tube-feet ") by which its loco- motion is carried on. In the other five zones — the so-called " inter-ambulacral areas" —the plates are of larger size, and are not perforated by any apertures. In all the modern Sea- urchins each of these ten zones, whether perforate or imper- forate, is composed of two rows of plates ; and there are thus twenty rows of plates in all. In the Palaeozoic Sea-urchins, on the other hand, the "ambulacral areas" are often like those of recent forms, in consisting of two rows of perforated plates (fig. 119); but the "inter-ambulacral areas "are always quite 1/8 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. peculiar in consisting each of three, four, five, or more rows of large imperforate plates, whilst there are sometimes four or ten rows of plates in the " ambulacral areas " also : so that there are many more than twenty rows of plates in the entire shell. Some of the Palaeozoic Sea-urchins, also, exhibit a very pecu- liar singularity of structure which is only known to exist in a very few recently-discovered modern forms (viz., Calveria and Phormosoma). The plates of the inter - ambulacral areas, namely, overlap one another in an imbricating manner, so as to communicate a certain amount of flexibility to the shell ; whereas in the ordinary living forms these plates are firmly articulated together by their edges, and the shell forms a rigid immovable box. The Carboniferous Sea-urchins which ex- hibit this extraordinary peculiarity belong to the genera Lepi- dechinus and Lepidesthes, and it seems tolerably certain that a similar flexibility of the shell existed to a less degree in the much more abundant genus Arch&oddaris. The Carbon- iferous Sea-urchins, like the modern ones, possessed movable spines of greater or less length, articulated to the exterior of the shell ; and these structures are of very common occur- rence in a detached condition. The most abundant genera are Archaocidaris and Pal&chinus ; but the characteristic American forms belong principally to Melonitcs, Oligoporus, and Lepidechinus. Amongst the Annelides it is only necessary to notice the little spiral tubes of Spirorbis Carbonarius (fig. 120), which are Fig. 120. — Spirorbis (Microconckus) Carbonarius, of the natural size, attached to a fossil plant, and magnified. Carboniferous .Britain and North America. (After Davvson.) commonly found attached to the leaves or stems of the Coal- plants. This fact shows that though the modern species of Spirorbis are inhabitants of the sea, these old representatives of the genus must have been capable of living in the brackish waters of lagoons and estuaries. The Crustaceans of the Carboniferous rocks are numerous, THE CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD. 179 and belong partly to structural types with which we are already familiar, and partly to higher groups which come into existence here for the first time. The gigantic Eurypterids of the Upper Silurian and Devonian are but feebly represented, and make their final exit here from the scene of life. Their place, how- ever, is taken by peculiar forms belonging to the allied group of the Xiphosura, represented at the present day by the King- crabs or " Horse-shoe Crabs " (Limulus). Characteristic forms of this group appear in the Coal-measures both of Europe and America ; and though constituting three distinct genera (Prest- wic/iia, BelinuruS) and Euproops\ they are all nearly related to one another. The best known of them, perhaps, is the Prestwichia rotundata of Coalbrookdale, here figured (fig. The ancient and for- merly powerful order of the Trilobites also undergoes its final ex- tinction here, not sur- viving the deposition of the Carboniferous Limestone series in Eu- rope, but extending its range in America into the Coal-measures. All the known Carbonifer- ous forms are small in size and degraded in point of structure, and they are referable to but three genera (Phil- UpSia, GriffithideS, and Fig. r-z-i.—Prestwchia rotundata, a Lirr.nloid Brachymetopus], be- wSSSScL) Coal-measures' Britain' llips;a setninifera, of the natural size — Mountain Limestone, Europe; b, One valve of the shell of Estheria tenella, of the natural size and enlarged — Coal-measures, Europe ; c, Bivalved shell of Entomo- conchus Scouleri, of the natural size — Mountain Limestone, Europe ; d, Dithyrocaris Scouleri, reduced in size — Mountain Limestone, Ireland ; e, Paleeocaris typus, slightly enlarged — Coal-measures, North America ; f, Anthrapalcemon gracilis, of the natural size — Coal-measures, North America. (After De Koninck, M'Coy, Rupert Jones, and Meek and Worthen.) Prawns, and Shrimps (the Macrura], in having a long and well- developed abdomen terminated by an expanded tail-fin. The Palczocaris typus (fig. 122, e] and the Anthrapalcemon gracilis (fig. 122, /), from the Coal-measures of Illinois, are two of the best understood and most perfectly preserved of the few known representatives of the " Long-tailed " Decapods in the Car- boniferous series. The group of the Crabs or " Short-tailed " THE CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD. l8l Decapods (Brachyura\ in which the abdomen is short, not terminated by a tail-fin, and tucked away out of sight beneath the body, is at present not known to be represented at all in the Carboniferous deposits. In addition to the water-inhabiting group of the Crustaceans, we find the articulate animals to be represented by members belonging to the air-breathing classes of the Arachnida, Myria- poda, an.l Insecta. The remains of these, as might have been expected, are not known to occur in the marine limestones of the Carboniferous series, but are exclusively found in beds asso- ciated with the Coal, which have been deposited in lagoons, estuaries, or marshes, in the immediate vicinity of the land, and which actually represent an old land-surface. The Arachnids are at present the oldest known of their class, and are repre- sented both by true Spiders and Scorpions. Remains of the latter (fig. 123) have been found both in the Old and New Fig. -L^.—Cyclophthalmus senior. A fossil Scorpion from the Coal-measures of Bohemia. Worlds, and indicate the existence in the Carboniferous period of Scorpions differing but very little from existing forms. The group of the Myriapoda, including the recent Centipedes and Galley-worms, is likewise represented in the Carboniferous strata, 182 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. but by forms in many respects very unlike any that are known to exist at the present day. The most interesting of these were obtained by Principal Dawson, along with the bones of Amphibians and the shells of Land-snails, in the sediment filling the hollow trunks of Sigillaria, and they belong to the genera Xylobius (fig. 124) and Archiulus. Lastly, the true insects are Fig. 124. — Xylobius Sigillarice, a Carboniferous Myriapod. a, A specimen, of the natural size; b, Anterior portion of the same, enlarged ; c, Posterior portion, enlarged. From the Coal-measures of Nova Scotia. (After Dawson.) represented by various forms of Beetles (Coleoptera), Orthoptera (such as Cockroaches), and Neuropterous insects resembling those which we have seen to have existed towards the close of Fig. 125. — Haplophlebium Earnest, a Carboniferous insect, from the Coal-measures of Nova Scotia. (After Dawson.) the Devonian period. One of the most remarkable of the latter is a huge May-fly (Haplophlebium Earnest, fig. 125), with THE CARBONIFEROUS PERIOD. 183 netted wings attaining an expanse of fully seven inches, and therefore much exceeding any existing Ephemerid in point of size. The lower groups of the Mollusca are abundantly represented in the marine strata of the Carboniferous series by Polyzoans Fig. 126. — Carboniferous Polyzoa. a, Fragment of Polyfiora dendroides, of the natural size, Ireland ; a' Small portion of the same, enlarged to show the cells ; b, Glauconome pulckerrima, a fragment, of the natural size, Ireland ; b', Portion of the same, enlarged ; c, The central screw-like axis ot Archimedes Wortheni, of the natural size — Carboniferous, America ; c1, Portion of the exterior of the frond of the same, enlarged ; c", Portion of the interior of the frond of the same showing the mouths of the cells, enlarged. (After M 'Coy and Hall.) and Brachiopods. Amongst the former, although a variety of other types are known, the majority still belong to the old group of the " Lace-corals " (Fenestellid(E\ some of the charac- teristic forms of which are here figured (fig. 1 26). The graceful 1-84 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. netted fronds of Fenestella, Retepora, and Polypora (fig. 126, a) are highly characteristic, as are the slender toothed branches of Glauconome (fig. 126, b\ A more singular form, however, is the curious Archimedes (fig. 126, <:), which is so characteristic of the Carboniferous formation of North America. In this re- markable type, the colony consists of a succession of funnel- shaped fronds, essentially similar to Fencstella in their structure, springing in a continuous spiral from a strong screw-like vertical axis. The outside of the fronds is simply striated; but the branches exhibit on the interior the mouths of the little cells in which the semi-independent beings composing the colony originally lived. The Brachiopods are extremely abundant, and for the most part belong to types which are exclusively or principally Palaeozoic in their range. The old genera Strophomcna, Orthis (fig. 127, c\ Athyris(h —Protorosanrits Speneri, Middle Permian, Thuringia, reduced in size. (After Von Meyer.) [Copied from Dana.] the Permian Reptiles.t The type-species of the genus Pro- torosaurus is the/5. Speneri (tig. 138) of the " Kupfer-schiefer " of Though commonly spelt as above, it is probable that the name of this Lizard was really intended to have been Preterosaurus—ftom the Greek proteros, first ; and saura, lizard : and this spelling is followed bv many writers. t In an extremely able paper upon the subject (Quart. Journ. Geol. Sex?., vol. xxvi.), Mr Etheridge has shown that there are good physical grounds for regarding the dolomitic conglomerate of Bristol as of Triassic age, and as probably corresponding in time with the Muschelkalk of the Continent. 202 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. Thuringia, but other allied species have been detected in the Middle Permian of Germany and the north of England. This Reptile attained a length of from three to four feet ; and it has been generally referred to the group of the Lizards (Lacertilia}, to which it is most nearly allied in its general structure, at the same time that it differs from all existing members of this group in the fact that its numerous conical and pointed teeth were implanted in distinct sockets in the jaws — this being a Croco- dilian character. In other respects, however, Protorosaurus approximates closely to the living Monitors ( Vara?iid j Rhaetic beds, and Dach- f stein beds). 1 I I V>lVVll VVVV » II . « H » » II . » .. " ' " " » II ., II H " I' . " I' ". » " JUl 0000 (/ o O w -O Middle Keuper (Hallstadt or St Cassian beds). ( Lower Keuper (Keuper Sandstones proper). Muschelkalk. Bunter Sandstein. (Gutten- stein and Werfen beds?) With .regard to the life of the Triassic period, we have to THE TRIASSIC PERIOD. 2O/ notice a difference as concerns the different members of the group similar to that which has been already mentioned in connection with the Permian formation. The arenaceous deposits of the series, namely, resemble those of the Permian, not only in being commonly red or variegated in their colour, but also in their conspicuous paucity of organic remains. They for the most part are either wholly unfossiliferous, or they contain the remains of plants or the bones of reptiles, such as may easily have been drifted from some neighbouring shore. The few fossils which may be considered as properly belonging to these deposits are chiefly Crustaceans (Estheria) or Fishes, which may well have lived in the waters of estuaries or vast inland seas. We may therefore conclude, with con- siderable probability, that the barren sandy and marly accumu- lations of the Burner Sandstein and Lower Keuper \vere not laid down in an open sea, but are probably brackish-water deposits, formed in estuaries or land-locked bodies of salt water. This at any rate would appear to be the case as regards these members of the series as developed in Britain and in their typical areas on the continent of Europe ; and the origin of most of the North American Trias would appear to be much the same. Whether this view be correct or not, it is certain that the beds in question were laid down in shallow water, and in the immediate vicinity of land, as shown by the numerous drifted plants which they contain and the common occurrence in them of the footprints of air-breathing animals (Birds, Reptiles, and Amphibians). On the other hand, the middle and highest members of the Trias are largely calca- reous, and are replete with the remains of undoubted marine animals. There cannot, therefore, be the smallest doubt but that the Muschelkalk and the Rhaetic or Kossen beds were slowly accumulated in an open sea, of at least a moderate depth ; and they have preserved for us a very considerable selection from the marine fauna of the Triassic period. The plants of the Trias are, on the whole, as distinctively Mesozoic in their aspect as those of the Permian are Palaeo- zoic. In spite, therefore, of the great difficulty which is ex- perienced in effecting a satisfactory strati graphical separation between the Permian and the Trias, we have in this fact a proof that the two formations were divided by an interval of time sufficient to allow of enormous changes in the terrestrial vegetation of the world. The Lepidodendroids, Asterophyllites, and Annularies, of the Coal and Permian formations, have now apparently wholly disappeared ; and the Triassic flora consists mainly of Ferns, Cycads, and Conifers, of which only the two 2O8 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. last need special notice. The Cycads (fig. 140) are true exo- genous plants, which in general form and habit of growth pre- Fig. 140. — Zamia spirals, a living Cycad. Australia. sent considerable resemblance to young Palms, but which in reality are most nearly related to the Pines and Firs (Coniftrai). The trunk is unbranched, often much shortened, and bears a crown of feathery pinnate fronds. The leaves are usually " circinate " • — they unroll in expanding, like the fronds of ferns. The seeds are not protected by a seed-vessel, but are borne upon the edge of altered leaves, or are carried on the scales of a cone. All the living species of Cycads are natives of warm countries, such as South America, the West Indies, Japan, Australia, Southern Ask, and South Africa. The remains of Cycads, as we have seen, are not known to occur in the Coal formation, or only to a very limited extent towards its close; nor are they known with certainty as occurring in Permian deposits. In the Triassic period, however, the re- mains of Cycads belonging to such genera as Pterophyllum (fig. 141, $), Zamites, and Podozamites (fig. 141, c\ are suffi- ciently abundant to constitute quite a marked feature in the vegetation ; and they continue to be abundantly represented throughout the whole Mesozoic series. The name " Age of Cycads," as applied to the Secondary epoch, is therefore, from a botanical point of view, an extremely appropriate one. The Conifers of the Trias are not uncommon, the principal form being Voltzia (fig. 141, a\ which possesses some peculiar characters, but would appear to be most nearly related to the recent Cypresses. As regards the Invertebrate animals of the Trias, our know- ledge is still principally derived from the calcareous beds which constitute the centre of the system (the Muschelkalk) THE TRIASSIC PERIOD. 209 on the continent of Europe, and from the St Cassian and Rhaetic beds still higher in the series; whilst some of the Fig. 141. — Triassic Conifers and. Cycads. a, Voltzia (Schizoneura) heterophyllat-paidnra loricata, a Triassic Ophiuroid. Muschelkalk, Germany. highly characteristic of the Muschelkalk. The remains of Articulate Animals are not very abundant in the Trias, if we except the bivalved cases of the little Water-fleas (Ostracoda], which are occasionally very plentiful. There are also many species of the horny, concentrically-striated valves of the Estheria (see fig. 122, b\ which might easily be taken for small Bivalve Molluscs. The "Long-tailed" Decapods, of the type of the Lobster, are not with- out examples, but they become much more numerous in the succeeding Jurassic pe- riod. Remains of insects have also been discovered. Amongst the Mollusca we have to note the disappearance, amongst the lower groups, of many characteristic Palaeozoic types. Amongst the Poly wans, the characteristic " Lace- corals," Fenestella, Retepora* Synocladia, Polypora, &c., have * The genus Retepora is really a recent one, represented by living forms ; and the so-called -Reteporce of the Palaeozoic rocks should properly receive another name (Phyllopora\ as being of ?.. different nature. The name Retepora has been here retained for these old forms simply in accordance with genera! usage. Fig. 142. — Head and upper part of the column of Encrintts liliiformis. The lower figure shows the articulating surface of one of the joints of the column. Muschelkalk, Germany. THE TRIASSIC PERIOD. 211 become apparently extinct. The same is true of many of the ancient types of Brachiopods, and conspicuously so of the great family of the Productida, which played such an important part in the seas of the Carboniferous and Permian periods. Bivalves (Lamellibranchiatd) and Univalves (Gasteropoda) are well represented in the marine beds of the Trias, and some of the former are particularly characteristic either of the formation as a whole or of minor subdivisions of it. A few of these characteristic species are figured in the accompanying illustration (fig. 144). Bivalve shells of the genera Daonella (fig. 144, a) and Halobia (Monotis] are very abundant, and are Fig. 144. Triassic Lamellibranchs. a, Daonella (Halobia) LommelU ; b, Pecten Valoniensis; c, Myophoria lineata; d, Cardium Rhceticum; e, Avlcula contorta; jf, A vicula socialis. found in the Triassic strata of almost all regions. These groups belong to the family of the Pearl-oysters (Aviculida), and are singular from the striking resemblance borne by some of their included forms to the Strophomena amongst the Lamp- shells, though, of course, no real relation exists between the two. The little Pearl-oyster, Aviada socialis (fig. 144, /), is found throughout the greater part of the Triassic series, and is especially abundant in the Muschelkalk. The genus Myo- phoria (fig. 144, c\ belonging to the Trigoniada, and related therefore to the Permian Schizodus, is characteristically Trias- sic, many species of the germs being known in deposits of this ?.ge. Lastly, the so-called " Rhsetic" or " Kossen" beds are 212 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. characterised by the occurrence in them of the Scallop, Pecten Valoniensis (fig. 144, b]; the small Cockle, Cardium Rh&ticum (fig. 144, d)j and the curiously-twisted Pearl-oyster, Avicula contorta (fig. 144, e] — this last Bivalve being so abundant that the strata in question are often spoken of as the " Avicula contorta beds." Passing over the groups of the Heteropods and Pteropods, we have to notice the Cephalopoda, which are represented in the Trias not only by the chambered shells of Tetrabranchiates, but also, for the first time, by the internal skeletons of Dibran- chiate forms. The Trias, therefore, marks the first recognised appearance of true Cuttle-fishes. All the known examples of these belong to the great Mesozoic group of the Belemnitidce ; and as this family is much more largely developed in the suc- ceeding Jurassic period, the consideration of its characters will be deferred till that formation is treated of. Amongst the chambered Cephalopods we find quite a number of the Palae- ozoic Orthoceratites, some of them of considerable size, along with the ancient Cyitoceras and Goniatites ; and these old types, singularly enough, occur in the higher portion of the Trias (St Cassian beds), but have, for some unexplained reason, not yet been recognised in the lower and equally fossiliferous formation of the Muschelkalk. Along with these we meet for the first time with true Ammonites, which fill such an extensive place in the Jurassic seas, and which will be spoken of nere. after. The form, how- ever, which is most characteristic of the Trias is Ceratites (fig. 145). In this genus the shell is curved into a flat spiral, the volu- tions of which are in contact ; and it further agrees with both Go- ff/Vz/A&rand Ammonites in the fact that the septa or partitions be- tween the air-cham- bers are not simple and plain (as in the Nautilus and its allies), but are folded and bent as they approach the outer wall of the shell. In the Goniatite these foldings of the septa are of a simply lobed or angulated nature, and in the Ammonite they are ex- Fig-. 145. — Ceratites nodosus, viewed from the side and from behind. Muschelkalk. THE TRIASSIC PERIOD. 213 tremely complex; whilst in the Ceratite there is an inter- mediate state of things, the special feature of which is, that those foldings which are turned towards the mouth of the shell are merely rounded, whereas those which are turned away from the mouth are characteristically toothed. The genus Ceratites, though principally Triassic, has recently been recognised in strata of Carboniferous age in India. From the foregoing it will be gathered that one of the most important points in connection with the Triassic Mollusca is the remarkable intermixture of Palaeozoic and Mesozoic types which they exhibit. It is to be remembered, also, that this intermixture has hitherto been recognised, not in the Middle Triassic limestones of the Muschelkalk, in which — as the oldest Triassic beds with marine fossils — we should naturally expect to find it, but in the St Cassian beds, the age of which is considerably later than that of the Muschelkalk. The intermingling of old and new types of Shell-fish in the Upper Trias is well brought out in the annexed table, given by Sir Charles Lyell in his 'Student's Elements of Geology' (some of the less important forms in the table being omitted here): — GENERA OF FOSSIL MOLLUSCA IN THE ST CASSIAN AND HALLSTADT BEDS. Common to Older Rocks. Characteristic of Triassic Rocks. Common to Newer Rocks. Orthoceras. Ceratites. Ammonites. Bactrites. Cochloceras. Chemnitzia. Macrocheilus. Rhabdoceras. Cerithium. Loxonema. Aulacoceras. Monodonta. Holopella. Naticella. Sphcera. Murchisonia. Platystoma. Cardita. Porcellia. Halobia. Myoconcha. Athyris. Hornesia. Hinnites. Retzia. Kontnckia. Monotis. Cyrtina. Scoliostoma. Plicatula. Euomphalus. Myophoria. Pachyrisma. (The last two are princi- Thecidium. pally but not exclus- ively Triassic. ) Thus, to emphasise the more important points alone, the Trias has yielded, amongst the Gasteropods, the characteristically Palaeozoic Loxonema, Holopella, Murchisonia, Euomphalus, and Porcellia, along with typically Triassic. forms like Platystoma and Scoliostoma, and the great modern groups Chemnitzia and Cerithium. Amongst the Bivalves we find the Palaeozoic Megalodon side by side with the Triassic Jjalobia and Myo- phoria, these being associated with the Carditcz, Hinnites, Plicatulce, and Trigonics of later deposits. The Brachiopods 214 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. exhibit the Palaeozoic Athyris, Retzia, and Cyrtina, with the Triassic Koninckia and the modern Thecidium. Finally, it is here that the ancient genera Orthoceras, Cyrtoceras, and Gonia- tites make their last appearance upon the scene of life, the place of the last of these being taken by the more complex and almost exclusively Triassic Ceratites ; whilst the still more complex genus Ammonites first appears here in force, and is never again wanting till we reach the close of the Mesozoic period. The first representatives of the great Secondary family of the Belemnites are also recorded from this horizon. Amongst the Vertebrate Animals of the Trias, the Fishes are represented by numerous forms belonging to the Ganoids and the Placoids. The Ganoids of the period are still all provided with unsymmetrical ("heterocercal") tails, and belong prin- cipally to such genera as Palceoniscus and Catopterus. The remains of Placoids are in the form of teeth and spines, the two principal genera being the two important Secondary groups Acrodus and Hybodus. Very nearly at the summit of the Trias in England, in the Rhaetic series, is a singular stratum, which is well known as the " bone-bed," from the number of fish-remains which it contains. More interesting, however, than the above, are the curious palate-teeth of the Trias, upon which Agassiz founded the genus Ceratodus. The teeth of Ceratodus (fig. 146) are singular flattened plates, Fig. 146.— a, Dental plate of Ceratodus serratus, Keuper; b, Dental plate of Ceratodus altus, Keuper. (After Agassiz.) composed of spongy bone beneath, covered superficially with a layer of enamel. Each plate is approximately triangular, one margin (which we now know to be the outer one) being prolonged into prongs or conical prominences, whilst the surface is more or less regularly undulated. Until recently, though the master-mind of Agassiz recognised that these singular bodies were undoubtedly the teeth of fishes, we were entirely ignorant as to their precise relation to the animal, or as to the exact affinities of the fish thus armed. Lately, how- ever, there has been discovered in the rivers of Queensland .(Australia) a living species of Ceratodus (C. Fosieri, fig. 147), THE TRIASSIC PERIOD. 21$ with teeth precisely similar to those of its Triassic predecessor ; and we thus have become acquainted with the use of these Fig. 147. — Ceratodus Fosteri, the Australian Mud-fish, reduced in size. structures and the manner in which they were implanted in the mouth. The palate carries two of these plates, with their longer straight sides turned towards each other, their sharply- sinuated sides turned outwards, and their short straight sides or bases directed backwards. Two similar plates in the lower jaw correspond to the upper, their undulated surfaces fitting exactly to those of the opposite teeth. There are also two sharp-edged front teeth, which are placed in the front of the mouth in the upper jaw; but these have not been recognised in the fossil specimens. The living Ceratodus feeds on vege- table matters, which are taken up or torn off from plants by the sharp front teeth, and then partially crushed between the undulated surfaces of the back teeth (Giinther) ; and there need be little doubt but that the Triassic Ceratodi followed a similar mode of existence. From the study of the living Ceratodus, it is certain that the genus belongs to the same group as the existing Mud-fishes {Dipnoi}; and we therefore learn that this, the highest, group of the entire class of Fishes existed in Triassic times under forms little or not at all differ- ent from species now alive ; whilst it has become probable that the order can be traced back into the Devonian period. The Amphibians of the Trias all belong to the old order of the Labyrinthodonts, and some of them are remarkable for their gigantic dimensions. They were first known by their footprints, which were found to occur plentifully in the Tri- assic sandstones of Britain and the continent of Europe, and which consisted of a double series of alternately-placed pairs of hand-shaped impressions, the hinder print of each pair being much larger than the one in front (fig. 148). So like were these impressions to the shape of the human hand, that the at that time unknown animal which produced them was at once chris- tened Cheirotherium, or " Hand-beast." Further discoveries, however, soon showed that the footprints of Cheirotherium were really produced by species of Amphibians which, like the existing Frogs, possessed hind-feet of a much larger size than 216 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. the fore-feet, and to which the name of Labyrinthodonts was ap- plied in consequence of the complex microscopic structure of the teeth (fig. 149). In the essen- tial details of their structure, the Triassic Labyrinthodonts did not differ materially from their pre- decessors in the Coal-measures and Permian rocks. They pos- sessed the same frog-like skuils (fig. 150), with a lizard-like body, a long tail, and comparatively feeble limbs. The hind -limbs were stronger and longer than the fore -limbs, and the lower Fig. 148. — Footprints of a Labyrinthodont (Cheirotkeriunf), from the Triassic Sand- stones of Hessberg, near Hildburghausen, Germany, reduced one-eighth. The lower figure shows a slab, with several prints, and traversed by reticulated sun-cracks : the upper figure shows the impression uf one of the hind-feet, one-half of the natural size. (.-\fter Sickler.) THE TRIASSIC PERIOD. surface of the body was protected by an armour of bony plates. Some of the Triassic Labyrinthodonts must have attained dimensions utterly unapproached amongst existing Amphibians, the skull of Labyrinthodon Jageri (fig. 150) being upwards of Fig. 149.— Section of the tooth of Labyrinthodon Mastodonsaurus) Ja-geri, showing the microscopic structure. Greatly enlarged. Trias. Fig. 150.— a, Skull of La- lyrinthodon j&geri, much reduced in size ; b, Tooth of the same. Trias, Wiirt- temberg. three feet in length and two feet in breadth. Restorations of some of these extraordinary creatures have been attempted in the guise of colossal Frogs ; but they must in reality have more closely resembled huge Newts. Remains of Reptiles are very abundant in Triassic deposits, and belong to very varied types. The most marked feature, in fact, connected with the Vertebrate fauna of the Trias, and of the Secondary rocks in general, is the great abundance of Reptilian life. Hence the Secondary period is often spoken of as the ." Age of Reptiles." Many of the Triassic reptiles depart widely in their structure from any with which we are acquainted as existing on the earth at the present day, and it is only possible here to briefly note some of the more important of these ancient forms. Amongst the group of the Lizards (Lacertiha\ represented by Protorosaurus in the older Permian strata, three types more or less certainly referable to this order may be mentioned. One of these is a small reptile which was found many years ago in sandstones near Elgin, in Scot- land, and which excited special interest at the time in conse- quence of the fact that the strata in question were believed to belong to the Old Red Sandstone formation. It is, however, 2l8 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. now certain that the Elgin sandstones which contain Telerpeton Elginense, as this reptile is termed, are really to be regarded as of Triassic age. By Professor Huxley, Telerpeton is regarded as a Lizard, which cannot be considered as " in any sense a less perfectly - organised creature than the Gecko, whose swift and noiseless run over walls and ceilings surprises the traveller in climates warmer than our own." The "Elgin Sand- stones" have also yielded another Lizard, which was originally described by Professor Huxley under the name of Hyperoda- pcdon, the remains of the same genus having been subsequently discovered in Triassic strata in India and South Africa. Tne Lizards of this group must therefore have at one time enjoyed a very wide distribution over the globe ; and the living Spheno- don of New Zealand is believed by Professor Huxley to be the nearest living ally of this family. The Hyperodapedon of the Elgin Sandstones was about six feet in length, with limbs adapted for terrestrial progression, but with the bodies of the vertebrte slightly biconcave, and having two rows of palatal teeth, which become worn down to the bone in old age. Lastly, the curious Rhynchosaurus of the Trias is also referred, by the eminent comparative anatomist above mentioned, to the order of the Lizards. In this singular reptile (fig. 151) the skull is somewhat bird-like, and the jaws appear to have been desti- tute of teeth, and to have been encased in a horny sheath like the beak of a Turtle or a Bird. It is possible, however, that the palate was furnished with teeth. The group of the Crocodiles and Alligators (Crocodilia], dis- tinguished by the fact that the teeth are implanted in dis- tinct sockets and the skin more or less extensively provided with bony plates, is represented in the Triassic rocks by the Stagonolepis of the Elgin Sandstones. The so-called "Theco- dont" reptiles (such as Belodon, Thecodontosaums, and Palao- saurus, fig. 152, c, d, e) are also nearly related to the Croco- diles, though it is doubtful if they should be absolutely referred to this group. In these reptiles, the teeth are implanted in distinct sockets in the jaws, their crowns being more or less compressed and pointed, " with trenchant and finely serrate margins " (Owen). The bodies of the vertebrae are hollowed out at both ends, but the limbs appear to be adapted for pro- gression on the land. The genus Belodon (fig. 152, c] is known to occur in the Keuper of Germany and in America ; THE TRIASSIC PERIOD. 2I9 and Palceosaurus (fig. 153, e) has also been found in the Trias of the same region. Teeth of the latter, however, are found, along with remains of Thecodontosaurus (fig, 153, d\ in a singular magnesian conglomerate near Bristol, which was originally believed to be of Permian age, but which appears to be undoubtedly Triassic. Fig. 152. — Triassic Reptiles, a, Skull of Nothosa-urus mirabilis, reduced in size — Mus- chelkalk, Germany ; b, Tooth of Simosaurus Gaillardoti, of the natural size — Muschel- kalk, Germany ; c, Tooth of Belodon Carolinensis — Trias, America; d, Tooth of Theco- dontosaunis antiquus, slightly enlarged — Britain; ey Tooth of Palceosaurus platyodon, of the natural size— Britain. The Trias has also yielded the remains of the great marine reptiles which are often spoken of collectively as the " Enalio- saurians " or " Sea-lizards/' and which will be more particularly spoken of iri treating of the Jurassic period, of which they are more especially characteristic. In all these reptiles the limbs are flattened out, the digits being enclosed in a continuous skin, thus forming powerful swimming-paddles, resembling the " flippers" of the Whales and Dolphins both in their general structure and in function. The tail is also long, and adapted to act as a swimming-organ ; and there can be no doubt but that these extraordinary and often colossal reptiles frequented the sea, and only occasionally came to the land. The Triassic Enaliosaurs belong to a group of which the later genus Plesiosaurus is the type (the Sauropterygid). One of the best known of the Triassic genera is Nothosaurm (fig. 152, a), in which the neck was long and bird-like, the jaws being im- mgnsely elongated, and carrying numerous powerful conical teeth implanted in distinct sockets. The teeth in Simosaurus (152, b) are of a similar nature ; but the orbits are of enormous size, indicating eyes of corresponding dimensions, and perhaps pointing to the nocturnal habits of the animal. In the singular 220 HISTORICAL PAL/EONTOLOGY. Placodus, again, the teeth are in distinct sockets, but resemble those of many fishes in being rounded and obtuse (fig. 153), forming broad crushing plates adapted for the comminu- tion of shell-fish. There is a row of these teeth all round the upper jaw proper, and a double series on the palate, but the lower jaw has only a single row of teeth. Placodus is found in the Muschelkaik, and the characters of its den- tal apparatus indicate that it was much more peaceful in its habits than us asso chelkalk, Germany. CiatCS the NotllOSaUr and Sl- mosaur. The Triassic rocks of South Africa and India have yielded the remains of some extraordinary Reptiles, which have been placed by Professor Owen in a separate order under the name of Anomodontia. The two principal genera of this group are Dicynodon and Oudenodon, both of which appear to have been large Reptiles, with well-developed limbs, organised for pro- gression upon the dry land. In Oudenodon (fig. 154, B) the jaws seem to have been wholly destitute of teeth, and must have been encased in a horny sheath, similar to that with which we are familiar in the beak of a Turtle. In Dicynodon (fig. 154, A), on the other hand, the front of the upper jaw and the whole of the lower jaw were destitute of teeth, and the front of the mouth must have constituted a kind of beak; but the upper jaw possessed on each side a single huge conical tusk, which is directed downwards, and must have continued to grow during the life of the animal. It may be mentioned that the above-mentioned Triassic sandstones of South Africa have recently yielded to the re- searches of Professor Owen a new and unexpected type of Reptile, which exhibits some of the structural peculiarities which we have been accustomed to regard as characteristic of the Carnivorous quadrupeds. The Reptile in question has been -named Cynodraco, and it is looked upon by its distin- guished discoverer as the type of a new order, to which he foas given the name of Theriodontia. The teeth of this singular form agree with those of the Carnivorous quadrupeds in con- sisting of three distinct groups — namely, front teeth or incisors, eye teeth or canines, and back teeth or molars. The canines THE TRIASSIC PERIOD. 221 also are long and pointed, very much compressed, and having their lateral margins finely serrated, thus presenting a singular Fig. 154. — Triassic Anomodont Reptiles. A, Skull of D icy notion lacerticeps, showing one of the great maxillary tusks ; B, Skull of Oudenodon Bainii, showing the toothless, beak-like jaws. From the Trias of South Africa. (After Owen.) resemblance to the teeth of the extinct " Sabre-toothed Tiger" (Machairodus). The bone of the upper arm (humerus) further shows some remarkable resemblances to the same bone in the Carnivorous Mammals. As has been previously noticed, Pro- fessor Owen is of opinion that some of the Reptilian remains of the Permian deposits will also be found to belong to this group of the " Theriodonts." Lastly, we find in the Triassic rocks the remains of Reptiles belonging to the great Mesozoic order of the Deinosauria. This order attains its maximum at a later period, and will be spoken of when the Jurassic and Cretaceous deposits come to be considered. Trie chief interest of the Triassic Reptiles of this group arises from the fact that they are known by their footprints as well as by their bones ; and a question has arisen whether the supposed footprints of birds which occur in the Trias have not really been produced by Deinosaurs. This leads us, therefore, to speak at the same time as to the evi- dence which we have of the existence of the class of Birds during the Triassic period. No actual bones of any bird have 222 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. as yet been detected in any Triassic deposit : but we have tolerably clear evidence of their existence at this time in the form of footprints. The impressions in question are found in considerable numbers in certain red sandstones of the age of the Trias in the valley of the Connecticut River, in the United States. They vary much in size, and have evidently been produced by many different animals walking over long stretches of estuarine mud and sand exposed at low water. The footprints now under consideration form a double series of single prints, and therefore, beyond all question, are the tracks of a biped— that is, of an animal which walked upou two legs. No living animals, save Man and the Birds, walk habitually on two legs ; and there is, therefore, a primd fade presumption that the authors of these prints were Birds. Moreover, each impression consists of the marks of three toes turned forwards (fig. 155), and therefore are precisely such as Fig. 155. — Supposed footprint of a Bird, from the Triassic Sandstones of the Con- necticut River. The slab shows also numerous " rain-prints." might be produced by Wading or Cursorial Birds. Further, the impressions of the toes show exactly the same numerical progression in the number of the joints as is observable in living Birds — that is to say, the innermost of the three toes consists of three joints, the middle one of four, and the outer one of five joints. Taking this evidence collectively, it would have seemed, until lately, quite certain that these tracks could only have been formed by Birds. It has, however, been shown that the Deinosaurian Reptiles possess, in some cases at any rate, some singularly bird -like characters, amongst THE TRIASSIC PERIOD. 223 which is the fact that the animal possessed the power of walking, temporarily at least, on its hind-legs, which were much longer and stronger than the fore -limbs, and which were sometimes furnished with no more than three toes. As the bones and teeth of Deinosaurs have been found in the Triassic deposits of Nor.th America, it may be regarded as certain that some of the bipedal tracks originally ascribed to Birds must have really been produced by these Reptiles. It seems at the same time almost a certainty that others of the three-toed impressions of the Connecticut sandstones were in truth produced by Birds, since it is doubtful if the bipedal mode of progression was more than an occasional thing amongst the Deinosaurs, and the greater number of the many known tracks exhibit no impressions of fore - feet. Upon the whole, therefore, we may, with much probability, conclude that the great class of Birds (Aves) was in existence in the Triassic period. If this be so, not only must there have been quite a number of different forms, but some of them must have been of very large size. Thus the largest footprints hitherto discovered in the Connecticut sandstones are 22 inches long and 12 inches wide, with a proportionate length of stride. These measurements indicate a foot four times as large as that of the African Ostrich ; and the animal which produced them— whether a Bird or a Deinosaur — must have been of colossal dimensions. Finally, the Trias completes the tale of the great classes of the Vertebrate sub-kingdom by presenting us with remains of the first known of the true Quadrupeds or Mammalia, These are at present only known by their teeth, or, in one instance, by one of the halves of the lower jaw ; and these indicate minute Quadrupeds, which present greater affinities with the little Banded Ant-eater (Myrmecobius fasriatus, fig. 158) of Australia than with any other living form. If this conjecture Fig. 1 56. — Lower jaw of Droniatherium sylvestre. Trias, North Carolina. (After Emmons.) Fig. 157. — a, Molar tooth of Microlestes antiquns, magni- fied ; b, Crown of the same, magnified still further. Trias, Germany. be correct, these ancient Mammals belonged to the order of the Marsupials or Pouched Quadrupeds (Marsupialia\ which 224 HISTORICAL PAL/EON TOLOGY. are now exclusively confined to the Australian province, South America, and the southern portion of North America. In Fig. 158. —The Banded Ant-eater (.!/> rus fascia fat) of Australia. the Old World, the only known Triassic Mammals belong to the genus Microlestes, and to the probably identical Hypsi- prymnopsis of Professor Boyd Dawkins. The teeth of Micro- lestes (fig. 157) were originally discovered by Plieninger in 1847 in the "bone-bed" which is characteristic of the sum- mit of the Rhsetic series both in Britain and on the continent of Europe ; and the known remains indicate two species. In Britain, teeth of Microlestes have been discovered by Mr Charles Moore in deposits of Upper Triassic age, filling a fissure in the Carboniferous limestone near Frome, in Somer- setshire ; and a molar tooth of Hypsiprymnopsis was found by Professor Boyd Dawkins in Rhsetic marls below the " bone- bed " at Watchet, also in Somersetshire. In North America, lastly, there has been found in strata of Triassic age one of the branches of the lower jaw of a small Mammal, which has been described under the name of Dromatherium sylvestre (fig. 156). The fossil exhibits ten small molars placed side by side, one canine, and three incisors, separated by small intervals, and it indicates a small insectivorous animal, pro- bably most nearly related to the existing Myrmecobiys. LITERATURE. The following list comprises a few of the more important sources of information as to the Triassic strata and their fossil contents : — (1) -* Geology of Oxford and the Valley of the Thames.' Phillips. (2) 'Memoirs of the Geological Survey of Great Britain and Ireland.' (3) 'Report on the Geology of Londonderry,' &c. Portlock. THE TRIASSIC PERIOD. 225 (4) "On the Zone of Avicula contorta," &c. — 'Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. xvi., 1860. Dr Thomas Wright. (5) " On the Zones of the Lower Lias and the Avicula contorta Zone" — 'Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. xvii., 1861. Charles Moore. (6) "On Abnormal Conditions of Secondary Deposits, ""&c. — 'Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. xxiii. , 1876-77. Charles Moore. (7) ' Geognostische Beschreibung des Bayerischen Alpengebirges.' Giimbel. (8) * Lethsea Rossica.' Pander. (9) ' Lethaea Geognostica.' . Bronn. (10) ' Petrefacta Germanize.' Goldfuss. ( 1 1 ) ' Petrefaktenkunde. ' Quenstedt. (12) 'Monograph of the Fossil Estheriae' (Pakeontographical Society). Rupert Jones. (13) " Fossil Remains of Three Distinct Saurian Animals, recently dis- covered in the Magnesian Conglomerate near Bristol " — ' Trans. Geol. Soc.,' ser. 2, vol. v., 1840. Riley and Stutchbury. (14) ' Die Saurier des Muschekalkes.' Von Meyer. (15) ' Beitrage /ur Palaeontologie Wiirttembergs.' Von Meyer and Plieninger. (16) ' Manual of Palaeontology.' Owen. (17) ' Odontography. ' Owen. (18) ' Report on Fossil Reptiles ' (British Association, 1841). Owen. (19) " On Dicynodon " — 'Trans. Geol. Soc.,' vol. iii., 1845. Owen. (20) ' Descriptive Catalogue of Fossil Reptilia and Fishes in the Museum of the Royal College of Surgeons', England.' Owen. (21) " On Species of Labyrinthodon from' Warwickshire " — ' Trans. Geol. Soc.,' ser. 2, vol. vi. Owen. (22) "On a Carnivorous Reptile" (Cynodraco major), £c. — 'Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. xxxii., 1876. Owen. (23) " On Evidences of Theriodonts in Permian Deposits," &c. — ' Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. xxxii., 1876. Owen. (24) "On the Stagonolepis Robertsoni," &c. — 'Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. xv., 1859. Huxley. (25) " On a New Specimen of Telerpeton Elginense " — ' Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. xxiii., 1866. Huxley. (26) "On Hyperodapedon " — 'Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. xxv., 1869. Huxley. (27) "On the Affinities between the Deinosaurian Reptiles and Birds" — 'Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. xxvi., 1870. Huxley. (28) "On the Classification of the Deinosauria," &c. — 'Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. xxvi., 1870. Huxley. (29) " Palseontologica Indica "— ' Memoirs of the Geol. Survey of India. ' (30) " On the Geological Position and Geographical Distribution of the Dolomitic Conglomerate of the Bristol Area" — 'Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. xxvi., 1870. R. Etheridge, sen. (31) " Remains of Labyrinthodonta from the Keuper Sandstone of War- wick " — 'Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. xxx., 1874. Miall. (32) ' Manual of Geology.' Dana. (33) 'Synopsis of Extinct Batrachia and Reptilia of North America.' Cope. (34) 'Fossil Footmarks.' Hitchcock. (35) 'Ichnology of New England.' Hitchcock. (36) 'Traite de Paleontologie Vegetale.' Schimper. (37) 'Histoire des Vegetaux Fossiles. ' Brongniart. (38) ' Monographic der Fossilen Conifercn.' Gceppert. 226 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. CHAPTER XVI. THE JURASSIC PERIOD. Resting upon the Trias, with perfect conformity, and with an almost undeterminable junction, we have the great series of deposits which are known as the Oolitic Rocks, from the com- mon occurrence in them of oolitic limestones, or as the Juras- sic Rocks, from their being largely developed in the mountain^ range of the Jura, on the western borders of Switzerland. Sediments of this series occupy extensive areas in Great Britain, on the continent of Europe, and in India. In North America, limestones and marls of this age have been detected in " the Black Hills, the Laramie range, and other eastern ridges of the Rocky Mountains ; also over the Pacific slope, in the Uintah, Wahsatch, and Humboldt Mountains, and in the Sierra Ne- vada " (Dana) ; but in these regions their extent is still un- known, and their precise subdivisions have not been deter- mined. Strata belonging to the Jurassic period are also known to occur in South America, in Australia, and in the Arctic zone. When fully developed, the Jurassic series is capable of subdivision into a number of minor groups, of which some are clearly distinguished by their mineral characters, whilst others are separated with equal certainty by the differences of the fossils that they contain. It will be sufficient for our present purpose, without entering into the more minute subdivisions of the series, to give here a very brief and general account of the main sub-groups of the Jurassic rocks, as developed in Britain — the arrangement of the Jura-formation of the continent of Europe agreeing in the main with that of England. I. THE LIAS. — The base of the Jurassic series of Britain is formed by the great calcareo - argillaceous deposit of the "Lias," which usually rests conformably and almost inseparably upon the Rhsetic beds (the so-called "White Lias"), and passes up, generally conformably, into the calcareous sand- stones of the Inferior Oolite. The Lias is divisible into the three principal groups of the Lower, Middle, and Upper Lias, as under, and these in turn contain many well-marked "zones;" so that the Lias has some claims to be considered as an inde- pendent formation, equivalent to all the remaining Oolitic rocks. The Lower Lias (Terrain Sincmurieti of D'Orbigny) sometimes attains a thickness of as much as 600 feet, and con- sists of a great series of bluuh or greyish laminated clays, THE JURASSIC PERIOD. alternating with thin bands of blue or grey limestone — the whole, when seen in quarries or cliffs from a little distance, assuming a characteristically striped and banded appearance. By means of particular species of Ammonites, taken along with other fossils which are confined to particular zones, the Lower Lias may be subdivided into several well-marked horizons. The Middle Lias, or Marlstone Scries (Terrain Liasien of D'Orbigny), may reach a thickness of 200 feet, and consists of sands, arenaceous marls, and argillaceous limestones, sometimes with ferruginous beds. The Upper Lias ( Terrain Toarden of D'Orbigny) attains a thickness of 300 feet, and consists princi- pally of shales below, passing upwards into arenaceous strata. II. THE LOWER OOLITES. — Above the Lias comes a com- plex series of partly arenaceous and argillaceous, but prin- cipally calcareous strata, of which the following are the more important groups : a, The Inferior Oolite (Terrain Bajocien of D'Orbigny), consisting of more than 200 feet of oolitic limestones, sometimes more or less sandy ; b, The Fullers Earth, a series of shales, clays, and marls, about 120 feet in thickness; c, The Great Oolite or Bath Oolite (Terrain Bat h- onien of D'Orbigny), consisting principally of oolitic lime- stones, and attaining a thickness of about 130 feet. The well- known " Stonesfield Slates" belong to this horizon; and the locally developed " Bradford Clay," " Cornbrash," and " For- est-marble " may be regarded as constituting the summit of this group. III. THE MIDDLE OOLITES. — The central portion of the Jurassic series of Britain is formed by a great argillaceous de- posit, capped by calcareous strata, as follows : a, The Oxford Clay (Terraiti Callovien and Terrain Oocfordien of D'Orbigny), consisting of dark-coloured laminated clays, sometimes reach- ing a thickness of 700 feet, and in places having its lower por- tion developed into a hard calcareous sandstone (" Kelloway Rock"); b, The Coral-Rag (Terrain Corallien of D'Orbigny, "Nerinean Limestone" of the Jura, " Diceras Limestone" of the Alps), consisting, when typically developed, of a central mass of oolitic limestone, underlaid and surmounted by cal- careous grits. IV. THE UPPER OOLITES. — a, The base of the Upper Oolites of Britain is constituted by a great thickness (600 ieet or more) of laminated, sometimes carbonaceous or bituminous clays, which are known as the Kimmeridge Clay (Terrain Kim- meridgien of D'Orbigny); b, The Portland Beds (Terrain Port- landien of D'Orbigny) succeed the Kimmeridge clay, and con- sist inferiorly of sandy beds surmounted by oolitic limestones 228 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. (" Portland Stone"), the whole series attaining a thickness of 150 feet or more, and containing marine fossils; t, The Pur- beck Beds are apparently peculiar to Great Britain, where they form the summit of the entire Oolitic series, attaining a total thickness of from 150 to 200 feet. The Purbeck beds consist of arenaceous, argillaceous, and calcareous strata, which can be shown by their fossils to consist of a most remarkable alter- nation of fresh-water, brackish-water, and purely marine sedi- ments, together with old land-surfaces, or vegetable soils, which contain the upright stems of trees, and are locally known as " Dirt-beds." One of the most important of the Jurassic deposits of the continent of Europe, which is believed to be on the horizon of the Coral-rag or of the lower part of the Upper Oolites, is the " Solenhofen Slate" of Bavaria, an exceedingly fine-grained limestone, which is largely used in lithography, and is cele- brated for the number and beauty of its organic remains, and especially for those of Vertebrate animals. The subjoined sketch-section (fig. 159) exhibits in a dia- grammatic form the general succession of the Jurassic rocks of Britain. Regarded as a whole, the Jurassic formation is essentially marine ; and though remains of drifted plants, and of insects and other air-breathing animals, are not uncommon, the fossils of the formation are in the main marine. In the Purbeck series of Britain, anticipatory of the great river-deposit of the Wealden, there are fresh-water, brackish-water, and even terres- trial strata, indicating that the floor of the Oolitic ocean was undergoing upheaval, and that the marine conditions which had formerly prevailed were nearly at an end. In places also, as in Yorkshire and Sutherlandshire, are found actual beds of coal : but the great bulk of the formation is an indu- bitable sea-deposit ; and its limestones, oolitic as they com- monly are, nevertheless are composed largely of the commin- uted skeletons of marine animals. Owing to the enormous number and variety of the organic remains which have been yielded by the richly fossiliferous strata of the Oolitic series, it will not be possible here to do more than to give an outline- sketch of the principal forms of life which characterise the Jurassic period as a whole. It is to be remembered, however, that every minor group of the Jurassic formation has its own peculiar fossils, and that by the labours of such eminent ob- servers as Quenstedt, Oppel, D'Orbigny, Wright, De la Beche, Tate, and others, the entire series of Jurassic sediments admits of a more complete and more elaborate subdivision into zones THE JURASSIC PERIOD. 229 characterised by special life-forms than has as yet been found practicable in the case of any other rock-series. GENERALISED SECTION OF THE JURASSIC ROCKS OF ENGLAND. -Purbeck Beds. Portland Beds. Kimmeridge Clay. Coral- Rag. Oxford Clay. -Cornbrash and Forest-marble. -Great Oolite. --Fuller's Earth. -Inferior Oolite. Upper Lias. Middle Lias (Marlstone series). Lower Lius. Rhsetic Marls (" White Lias "). The plants of the Jurassic period consist principally of Ferns, Cycads, and Conifers — agreeing in this respect, there- 230 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. fore, with those of the preceding Triassic formation. The Ferns are very abundant, and belong partly to old and partly to new genera. The Cycads are also very abundant, and, on the whole, constitute the most marked feature of the Jurassic vegetation, many genera of this group being known (Ptero- phyllum, Otozamites, Zamites, Crossozatnia, Williamsonia, Buck- landia, &c.) The so-called "dirt-bed" of the Purbeck series consists of an ancien soil, in which stand erect the trunks of Conifers and the silicified stools of Cycads of the genus Mantcl- //rt (fig. 1 60). The Conifera of the Jurassic are represented by Fig. 160. — Mantellla (Cycadeoideti) megaJoj>hyUa, a Cycad from the Purbeck "dirt-bed " Upper Oolites, England. various forms more or less nearly allied to the existing Arau- caricz ; and these are known not only by their stems or branches, but also in some cases by their cones. We meet, also, with the remains of undoubted Endogenous plants, the most important of which are the fruits of forms allied to the existing Screw-pines (Pandan&z}, such as Podocarya and Kaida- carpum. So far, however, no remains of Palms have been found ; nor are we acquainted with any Jurassic plants which could be certainly referred to the great " Angiospermous " group of the Exogens, including the majority of our ordinary plants and trees. Amongst animals, the Protozoans are well represented in the Jurassic deposits by numerous Foraminifers and Sponges ; as are the C&lenterates by numerous Corals. Remains of these last-mentioned organisms are extremely abundant in some of the limestones of the formation, such as the " Coral-rag" and the Great Oolite ; and the former of these may fairly be considered as an ancient " reef/' The Rugose Corals have not hitherto been detected in the Jurassic rocks ; and the " Tabulate Corals" so-called, are represented only by examples of the modern genus MiUeponi. With this excep- THE JURASSIC PERIOD. 231 tion, all the Jurassic Corals belong to the great group which predominates in recent seas (Zoantharia sderodermata); and the majority belong to the important reef-building family of the " Star-corals " (Astrceidtz), The form here figured (Thecos- milia annular is, fig. 161) is one of the characteristic species of the Coral-rag. Fig. 161. — Thecosmilia annularis. Coral-rag, England. The Echinoderms are very numerous and abundant fossils in the Jurassic series, and are represented by Sea-lilies, Sea- urchins, Star-fishes, and Brittle-stars. The Crinoids are still common, and some of the limestones of the series are largely composed of the debris of these organisms. Most of the Jurassic forms resemble those with which we are already familiar, in having the body permanently attached to some foreign object by means of a longer or shorter jointed stalk or " column." One of the most characteristic Jurassic genera of these " stalked " Crinoids (though not exclusively confined to this period) is Pentacrinus (fig. 162). In this genus, the column is five-sided, with whorls of '"' side-arms ; " and the arms are long, slender, and branched. The genus is represented at the present day by the beautiful " Medusa-head Pentacrin- ite " (Pentacrimis capiit-medusa). Another characteristic Oolitic genus \<$>Apiocrinus, comprising the so-called "Pear Encrinites." In this group the column is long and rounded, with a dilated base, and having its uppermost joints expanded so as to form, with the cup itself, a pear-shaped mass, from the summit of which spring the comparatively short arms. Besides the 232 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. " stalked " Crinoids, the Jurassic rocks have yielded the re- mains of the higher group of the " free ;; Crinoids, such as Fig. 162.— Pentacrinns fascicu'.osns, Lias. The left-hand figure shows a few of the joints of the column ; the middle figure shows the arms, and the summit of the column with its side-arms ; and the right-hand figure shows the articulating surface of one of the column-joints. Saccosoma. These forms resemble the existing "Feather- stars" (Comatitla) in being attached when young to some THE JURASSIC PERIOD. 233 foreign body by means of a jointed stem, from which they detach themselves when fully grown to lead an independent existence. In this later stage of their life, therefore, they closely resemble the Brittle-stars in appearance. True Star- fishes (Asteroids] and Brittle-stars (Ophiuroids) are abundant in the Jurassic rocks, and the Sea-urchins (Echinoids) are so numerous and so well preserved as to constitute quite a marked feature of some beds of the series. All the Oolitic urchins agree with the modern Echinoids in having the shell composed of no more than twenty rows of plates. Many different genera are known, and a characteristic species of the Middle Oolites (Hemiridaris cremilaris, fig. 163) is here figured. Fig. 163. — Kemicidarts cremilaris, showing the great tubercles on which the spines were supported. Middle Oolites. Passing over the Annelides, which, though not uncommon, are of little special interest, we come to the Articulates, which also require little notice. Amongst the Crustaceans, whilst the little Water-fleas (Ostracoda) are still abundant, the most mark- ed feature is the predominance which is now assumed by the Decapods — the highest of the known groups of the class. True Crabs (Brachyurd) are by no means unknown ; but the prin- cipal Oolitic Decapods belonged to the " Long-tailed " group (Macrura\ of which the ' existing Lobsters, Prawns, and Shrimps are members. The fine-grained lithographic slates of Solenhofen are especially famous as a depot for the remains of these Crustaceans, and a characteristic species from this locality (Eryon arctiformis, fig. 164) is here represented. Amongst the air-breathing Articulates, we meet in the Oolitic rocks with the remains of Spiders (Arachnida\ Centipedes (Myriapoda), and numerous true Insects (Insecta\ In con- nection with the last-mentioned of these groups, it is of interest to note the occurrence of the oldest known fossil Butterfly — the Paltzontina Oolitica of the Stonesfield slate — the rela- 234 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. tionships of which appear to be with some of the living Butterflies of Tropical America. Coming to the Molhisca, the Polyzoaus, numerous and Fig. 164.— Eryon arctiformls, a "Long-tailed Decapod," from the Middle Oolites (Solenhofen Slate). beautiful as they are, must be at once dismissed; but the Brachiopods deserve a moment's attention. The Jurassic Lamp-shells (fig. 165) do not fill by any means such a pre- dominant place in the marine fauna of the period, as in many Palaeozoic deposits, but they are still individually numerous. The two ancient genera Leptana (fig. 165, a) and Spirifera (fig. 165, £), dating the one from the Lower and the other from the Upper Silurian, appear here for the last time upon the scene, but they have not hitherto been recognised in deposits later than the Lias. The great majority of the Jurassic Brachiopods, however, belong to the genera Terebratula (fig. 165, c, e, /} and Rhynchonella (fig. 165, d\ both of which are represented by living forms at the present day. The Tcrebratute, in par- ticular, are very abundant, and the species are often confined to special horizons in the series. Remains of Bivalves (Lamellibranchiata) are very numerous THE JURASSIC PERIOD. 235 in the Jurassic deposits, and in many cases highly character- istic. In the marine beds of the Oolites, which constitute by Fig. 165. — Jurassic Brachiopods. «, Leptcena Liassica, enlarged, the small cross below the figure indicating the 'true size of the shell — Lias ; b, Spirifera rostrata, Lias ; c, Terebratula^ quadrifida, Lias ; d, d', Rhynchonella varians, Fuller's Earth and Kello- way Rock ; e, Terebratula spha-roidalis, Inferior Oolite ;/, Terebratula digona, Brad- ford Clay, Forest-marble, and Great Oolite. (After Davidson). far the greater portion of the whole formation, the Bivalves are of course marine, and belong to such genera as Trigonia, Lima, Pholadomya, Cardinia, Avicula, Hippopodium, &c. j but in the Purbeck beds, at the summit of the series, we find bands of Oysters alternating with strata containing fresh-water or brackish-water Bivalves, such as Cyrence and Corbulce. The predominant Bivalves of the Jurassic, however, are the Oysters, which occur under many forms, and often in vast numbers, particular species being commonly restricted to particular horizons. Thus of the true Oysters, Ostrea distorta is char- acteristic of the Purbeck series, where it forms a bed twelve feet in thickness, known locally as the " Cinder-bed ; " Ostrea expansa abounds in the Portland beds ; Ostrea deltoidea is characteristic of the Kimmeridge clay ; Ostrea gregaria pre- dominates in the Coral-rag ; Ostrea acuminata characterises the small group of the Fuller's Earth ; whilst the plaited Ostrea Marshii (fig. 166) is a common shell in the Lower and Middle Oolites. Besides the more typical Oysters, the Oolitic rocks abound in examples of the singularly unsymmetrical forms 236 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. belonging to the genera Exogyra and Gryph&a (fig. 167). In the former of these are included Oysters with the beaks Fig. it>6.~~Ostrea Marshii. Middle and Lower Oolites. Fig. 167. - «; ra. Lias. " reversed " — that is to say, turned towards the hinder part of the shell ; whilst in the latter are Oysters in which the lower valve of the shell is much the largest, and has a large incurved beak, whilst the upper valve is small and concave. One of the most characteristic Exogyra is the E. virgula of the Oxford Clay, and of the same horizon on the Continent ; and the Gryphaa incurva (fig. i67)Js equally abundant in, and char- acteristic of, the formation of the Lias. Lastly, we may notice the extraordinary shells belonging to the genus Diceras (fig. 1 68), which are exclusively confined to the Middle Oolites. In this formation in the Alps they occur in such abundance as to give rise to the name of " Calcaire a Di- cerates," applied to beds of the same age as the Coral- rag of Britain. The genus Di- ceras belongs to the same fam- ily as the " Thorny Clams" ( Chamci) of the present day — the shell being composed of nearly equally-sized valves, the beaks of which are extremely prominent and twisted into a spiral. The shell was attached to some foreign body by the beak of one of. its valves. Amongst the Jurassic Univalves (Gasteropoda] there are many examples of the ancient and long-lived Pleurotomaria ; but on the whole the Univalves begin to have a modern aspect. The round-mouthed (" holostomatous "), vegetable- Fig. 168. — Diceras arietina. Oolite. Middle THE JURASSIC PERIOD. 237 eatiog Sea-snails, such as the Limpets (fatdlitfce), the Nerites (Nerita), the Turritella, Cheinnitzite, &c., still hold a predomi- nant place. The two most noticeable genera of this group are Cerithiiim and Nerinaa — the former of these attaining great importance in the Tertiary and Recent seas, whilst the latter (fig. 169) is highly characteristic of the Jurassic series, though not exclusively confined to it. One of the limestones of the Jura, believed to be of the age of the Coral-rag (Middle Oolite) of Bri- tain, abounds to such an extent in the turreted shells of Nerincea as to have gained the name of " Calcaire a Nerine'es." In addition to forms such as the preceding, we now for the first time meet, in any force, with the Carnivorous Univalves, in which the mouth of the shell is notched or produced into a canal, giving rise to the technical name of " siphonostomatous," applied to the shell. Some of the carnivorous forms belong to extinct types, such as the Purpuroidea of the Great Oo- lite ; but others are referable to well-known existing genera. Thus we meet here with species of the familiar groups of the Whelks (Buccinum), the Spindle - shells (Fusus), the Spider- shells (Pteroceras], Murex, Rostellaria, and others which are not at present known to occur in any earlier formation. Amongst the Wing-shells (Fieropodd}, it is sufficient to mark the final appearance in the Lias of the ancient genus Comdaria. Lastly, the order of the Cephalopoda, in both its Tetrabran- chiate and Dibranchiate sections, undergoes a vast devel- opment in the Jurassic period. The old and comparatively simple genus Nautilus is still well represented, one species being very similar to the living Pearly Nautilus (N. pompihus); but the Orthocerata and Goniatites of the Trias have finally disappeared; and the great majority of the Tetrabranchiate forms are referable to the comprehensive genus Ammonites, with its many sub-genera and its hundreds of recorded species. The shell in Ammonites is in the form of a flat spiral, all the coils of which are in contact (figs. 170 and 171). The inner- most whorls of the shell are more or less concealed ; and the body-chamber is elongated and narrow, rather than expanded towards the mouth. The tube or siphuncle which runs through '17 Fig. 169.— AVr/«; whilst the Mollus- can genus Trigonia is nowadays exclusively confined to the Australian coasts. In England, at the time of the deposition of the Jurassic rocks, we must have had a fauna and flora very closely resembling what we now see in Australia. The small Marsupials, Amphitheriiim, Phascolotherium, and others, prove that the Mammals were the same in order; cones of Arau- carian pines, with tree-ferns and fronds of Cycads, occur throughout the Oolitic series; spine-bearing fishes, like the Port-Jackson Shark, are abundantly represented by genera such as Acrodus and Strophodus ; and lastly, the genus Tri- gonia^ now exclusively Australian, is represented in the Oolites by species which differ little from those now existing. More- over, the discovery during recent years of the singular Mud-fish, the Ceratodus Fosteri, in the rivers of Queensland, has added another and a very striking point of resemblance to those already mentioned ; since this genus of Fishes, though pre- eminently Triassic, nevertheless extended its range into the Jurassic. Upon the whole, therefore, there is reason to con- clude that Australia has undergone since the close of the Jurassic period fewer changes and vicissitudes than any other known region of the globe ; and that this wonderful continent has therefore succeeded in preserving a greater number of the characteristic life-features of the Oolites than any other country with which we are acquainted. LITERATURE. The following list comprises some of the more important sources of information as to the rocks and fossils of the Jurassic series : — (1) ' Geology of Oxford and the Thames Valley.' Phillips. (2) 'Geology of Yorkshire,' vol. ii. Phillips. (3) ' Memoirs of the Geological Survey of Great Britain.' (4) ' Geology of Cheltenham.' Murchison, 2d ed. Buckmr.n. (5) Mntroduction to the Monograph of the Oolitic AsteriadDs' (Pabeon- tographical Society). Wright. (6) " Zone of Avicula contorta and the Lower Lias of the South of England" — ' Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. xvi., 1860. Wright. (7) " Oolites of Northamptonshire" — ' Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vols. xxvi. and xxix. Sharp. (8) 'Manual of Geology.' Dana. (9) 'Derjura.' Quenstedt. (10) ' Das Flotzgebirge Wiirttembergs.' Quenstedt. (n) 'Jura Formation.' Oppel. 256 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. (12) ' Paleontologie du Departement de la Moselle.' Terquem. (13) 'Cours elementaire cle Paleontologie.' L) Orbigny. (14) ' Paleontologie Frai^aise.' D'Orbigny. (15) 'Fossil Echinodermata of the Oolitic Formation' (Palaeontographi- cal Society). Wright. (16) ' Brachiopoda of the Oolitic Formation' (Palaeontographical So- ciety). Davidson. (17) ' Mollusca of the Great Oolite' (Palaeontographical Society). Mor- ris and Lycett. (18) 'Monograph of the Fossil Trigonise' (Palaeontographical Society). Lycett. (19) 'Corals of the Oolitic Formation' (Palaeontographical Society). Edwards and Haime. (20) ' Supplement to the Corals of the Oolitic Formation ' (Palceonto- graphical Society). Martin Duncan. (21) 'Monograph of the Belemnitidse ' (Palaeontographical Society). Phillips. (22) ' Structure of the Belemnitidae ' (Mem. Geol. Survey). Huxley. (23) ' Sur les Belemnites. ' Blainville. (24) ' Cephalopoden.' Quenstedt. (25) ' Mineral Conchology.' Sowerby. (26) 'Jurassic Cephalopoda' (Palaeontologica Indica). Waagen. (27) 'Manual of the Mollusca.' Woodward. (28) 'Petrefaktenkunde.' Schlotheim. (29) ' Bridgewater Treatise.' Buckland. (30) ' Versteinerungen des Oolithengebirges.' Roemer. (31) 'Catalogue of British Fossils.' Morris. (32) ' Catalogue of Fossils in the Museum of Practical Geology.' Ether- idge. (33) ' Beitrage zur Petrefaktenkunde.' Miinster. (34) ' Petrefacta Germaniae.' Goldfuss. (35) ' Lethaea Rossica.' Eichwald. (36) ' Fossil Fishes' (Decades of the Geol. Survey). Sir Philip Egerton. (37) 'Manual of Palaeontology.' Owen. (38) ' British Fossil Mammals and Birds.' Owen. (39) ' Monographs of the Fossil Reptiles of the Oolitic Formation ' (Palae- ontographical Society). Owen. (40) ' Fossil Mammals of the Mesozoic Formations' (Palaeontographical Society). Owen. (41) 'Catalogue of Ornithosauria.' Seeley. (42) "Classification of the Deinosauria " — 'Quart. Journ. Geol. Soc.,' vol. xxvi., 1870. Huxley. CHAPTER XVII. THE CRETACEOUS PERIOD, The next series of rocks in ascending order is the great and important series of the Cretaceous Rocks, so called from the general occurrence in the system of chalk (Lat. crcta, chalk). THE CRETACEOUS PERIOD. 257 As developed in Britain and Europe generally, the following leading subdivisions may be recognised in the Cretaceous series : — 1. Wealden, ) T 2. Lower Greensand or Neocomian, ' Lower Cetaceous. 3. Gault, 4. Upper Greensand, 5. Chalk, 6. Maestricht beds, Upper Cretaceous. I. Wealden. — The Wealden formation, though of consider- able importance, is a local group, and is confined to the south- east of England, France, and some other parts of Europe. Its name is derived from the Weald, a district comprising parts of Surrey, Sussex, and Kent, where it is largely developed. Its lower portion, for »a thickness of from 500 to 1000 feet, is arenaceous, and is known as the Hastings Sands. Its Upper portion, for a thickness of 150 to nearly 300 feet, is chiefly argillaceous, consisting of clays with sandy layers, and occa- sionally courses of limestone. The geological importance of the Wealden formation is very great, as it is undoubtedly the delta of an ancient river, being composed almost wholly of fresh-water beds, with a few brackish- water and even marine strata, intercalated in the lower portion. Its geographical extent, though uncertain, owing to the enormous denudation to which it has been subjected, is nevertheless great, since it extends from Dorsetshire to France, and occurs also in North Germany. Still, even if it were continuous between all these points, it would not be larger than the delta of such a modern river as the Ganges. The river which produced the Wealden series must have flowed from an ancient continent occupying what is now the Atlantic Ocean ; and the time occupied in the formation of the Wealden must have been very great, though we have, of course, no data by which we can accurately calculate its duration. The fossils of the Wealden series are, naturally, mostly the remains of such animals as we know at the present day as in- habiting rivers. We have, namely, fresh-water Mussels ( Unto), River-snails (Paludina), and other fresh - water shells, with numerous little bivalved Crustaceans, and some fishes. II. Lower Greensand (Neocomien of D'Orbigny). — The Wealden beds pass upward, often by insensible gradations, into the Lower Greensand. The name Lower Greensand is not an appropriate one, for green sands only occur sparingly and occasionally, and are found in other formations. For this 258 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. reason it has been proposed to substitute for Lower Green sand the name Nwc&mian, derived from the town of Neufchatel — anciently called Neocomum — in Switzerland. If this name were adopted, as it ought to be, the Wealden beds would be called the Lower Neocomian. The Lower Greensand or Neocomian of Britain has a thick- ness of about 850 feet, and consists of alternations of sands, sandstones, and clays, with occasional calcareous bands. The general colour of the series is dark brown, sometimes red ; and the sands are occasionally green, from the presence of silicate of iron. The fossils of the Lower Greensand are purely marine, and among the most characteristic are the shells of Cephalopods. The most remarkable point, however, about the fossils of the Lower Cretaceous series, is their marked divergence from the fossils of the Upper Cretaceous rocks. ' "Of 280 species of fossils in the Lower Cretaceous series, only 51, or about 18 per cent, pass on into the Upper Cretaceous. This break in the life of the two periods is accompanied by a decided phy- sical break as well ; for the Gault is often, if not always, un- conformably superimposed on the Lower Greensand. At the same time, the Lower and Upper Cretaceous groups form a closely- connected and inseparable series, as shown by a com- parison of their fossils with those of the underlying Jurassic rocks and the overlying Tertiary beds. Thus, in Britain no marine fossil is known to be common to the marine beds of the Upper Oolites and the Lower Greensand ; and of more than 500 species of fossils in the Upper Cretaceous rocks, almost every one died out before the formation of the lowest Tertiary strata, the only survivors being one Brachiopod and a few Foraminifera. III. Gault (Aptien of D'Orbigny). — The lowest member of the Upper Cretaceous series is a stiff, dark -grey, blue, or brown clay, often worked for brick-making, and known as the Gault, from a provincial English term. It occurs chiefly in the south-east of England, but can be traced through France to the flanks of the Alps and Bavaria. It never exceeds 100 feet in thickness ; but it contains many fossils, usually in a state of beautiful preservation. IV. Upper Greensand (Albien of D'Orbigny; Unterquader and Lower Pldnerkalk of Germany). — The Gault is succeeded upward by the Upper Greensand, which varies in thickness from 3 up to 100 feet, and which derives its name from the occasional occurrence in it of green sands. These, however, are local and sometimes wanting, and the name " LTpper THE CRETACEOUS PERIOD. 259 Greensand " is to be regarded as a name and not a description. The group consists, in Britain, of sands and clays, sometimes with bands of calcareous grit or siliceous limestone, and occa- sionally containing concretions of phosphate of lime, which are largely worked for agricultural purposes. V. White Chalk. — The top of the Upper Greensand be- comes argillaceous, and passes up gradually into the base of the great formation known as the true Chalk, divided into the three subdivisions of the chalk-marl, white chalk without flints, and white chalk with flints. The first of these is sim- ply argillaceous chalk, and passes up into a great mass of obscurely- stratified white chalk in which there are no flints (Turonien of D'Orbigny; Mittdquader of Germany). This, in turn, passes up into a great mass of white chalk, in which the stratification is marked by nodules of black flint arranged in layers (Senonien of D'Orbigny ; Oberquader of Germany). The thickness of these three subdivisions taken together is some- times over 1000 feet, and their geographical extent is very great. White Chalk, with its characteristic appearance, may be traced from the north of Ireland to the Crimea, a distance of about 1 140 geographical miles ; and, in an opposite direction, from the south of Sweden to Bordeaux, a distance of about 840 geographical miles. VI. In Britain there occur no beds containing Chalk fossils, or in any way referable to the Cretaceous period, above the true White Chalk with flints. On the banks of the Maes, however, near Maastricht in Holland, there occurs a series of yellowish limestones, of about 100 feet in thickness, and un- doubtedly superior to the White Chalk. These Maastricht beds (Danien of D'Orbigny) contain a remarkable series of fossils, the characters of which are partly Cretaceous and partly Tertiary. Thus, with the characteristic Chalk fossils, Belcmnites. Baculites, Sea-Urchins, &c., are numerous Univalve Molluscs, such as Cowries and Volutes, which are otherwise exclusively Tertiary or Recent. Holding a similar position to the Maestricht beds, and showing a similar intermixture of Cretaceous forms with later type.s, are certain beds which occur in the island of Seeland, in Denmark, and which are known as the Faxoe Limestone. Of a somewhat later date than the Maestricht beds is the Pisolitic Limestone of France, which rests unconformably on the White Chalk, and contains a large number of Tertiary fossils along with some characteristic Cretaceous types. The subjoined sketch-section exhibits the general succession of the Cretaceous deposits in Britain : — 26Q HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. GENERALISED SECTION OF THE CRETACEOUS SERIES OF BRITAIN. Fig 185. Eocene. 3 ;= White Chalk with Flints. . >> White Chalk without Flints. Chalk Marl. Upper Greensancl. Gault. Lower Greensancl or Neo- comian. Weald Clay. Wealden Series. - Hastings Sands. In North America, strata of Lower Cretaceous age are well represented in Missouri, Wyoming, Utah, and in some other areas; but the greater portion of the American deposits of this period are referable to the Upper Cretaceous. The rocks of this series are mostly sands, clays, and limestones — CJialk itself being unknown except in Western Arkansas. Amongst the sandy accumulations, one of the most important is the so- THE CRETACEOUS PERIOD. 26l called " marl " of New Jersey, which is truly a " Greensand," and contains a large proportion of glauconite (silicate of iron and potash). It also contains a little phosphate of lime, and is largely worked for agricultural purposes. The greatest thick- ness attained by the Cretaceous rocks of North America is about 9000 feet, as in Wyoming, Utah, and Colorado. Ac- cording to Dana, the Cretaceous rocks of the Rocky Mountain territories pass upwards "without interruption into a coal- bearing formation, several thousand feet thick, on which the following Tertiary strata lie unconformably." The lower por- tion of this "Lignitic formation" appears to be Cretaceous, and contains one or more beds of Coal; but the upper part of it perhaps belongs to the Lower Tertiary. In America, therefore, the lowest Tertiary strata appear to rest conformably upon the highest Cretaceous ; whereas in Europe, the succession at this point is invariably an unconformable one. Owing, however, to the fact that the American "Lignitic formation" is a shallow- water formation, it can hardly be expected to yield much material whereby to bridge over the great palaeontological gap between the White Chalk and Eocene in the Old World. Owing to the fact that so large a portion of the Cretaceous formation has been deposited in the sea, much of it in deep water, the plants of the period have for the most part been found special members of the series, such as the Wealden beds, the Aix-la-Chapelle sands, and the Lignitic beds of North America. Even the purely marine strata, however, have yielded plant-remains, and some of these are peculiar and proper to the deep-sea deposits of the series. Thus the little calcareous discs termed " coccoliths," which are known to be of the nature of "calcareous sea-weeds (A/gce) have been de- tected in the White Chalk ; and the flints of the same forma- tion commonly contain the spore-cases of the microscopic Desmids (the so-called Xanthidia), along with the siliceous cases of the equally diminutive Diatoms. The plant-remains of the Lower Cretaceous greatly resemble those of the Jurassic period, consisting mainly of Ferns, Cy- cads, and Conifers. The Upper Cretaceous rocks, however, bothvin Europe and in North America, have yielded an abun- dant flora which resembles the existing vegetation of the globe in consisting mainly of Angiospermous Exogens and of Mono- cotyledons.* In Europe the plant-remains in question have * The "Flowering plants" are divided into the two great groups of the Endogens and Exogens. The Endogens (such as Grasses, Palms, Lilies, &c.) have no true bark, nor rings of growth, and the stem is said to be "endogenous ; " the young plant also possesses but a single seed-leaf or 262 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. been found chiefly in certain sands in the neighbourhood of Aix- la-Chapelle, and they consist of numerous Ferns, Conifers (such as Cycadopteris), Screw P'mes(Pandamts), Oaks (Quercus\ Wal- nut (Jiiglans), Fig (Ficus), and many Proteacea, some of which are referred to existing genera (Dryandra, Banksia, Grevillea, &c.) In North America, the Cretaceous strata of New Jersey, Alabama, Nebraska, Kansas, &c., have yielded the remains of numerous plants, many of which belong to existing genera. Amongst these may be mentioned Tulip-trees (Liriodendroti), Sassafras (fig. 186), Oaks (Quenus), Beeches (Fagjis), Plane- trees (Platanus), Alders (A/nus), Dog-wood (Com us), Willows (Salix), Poplars (Populus), Cypresses (dtpressus}, Bald Cy- presses (Taxodium), Magnolias, &c. Besides these, however, there occur other forms which have now entirely disappeared from North America — as, for example, species of Cinnainoinuin and Araucaria. It follows from the above, that the Lower and Upper Creta- ceous rocks are, from a botanical point of view, sharply sepa- rated from one another. The Palaeozoic period, as we have seen, is characterised by the prevalance of " Flowerless " plants (Cryptogams), its higher vegetation consisting almost exclu- sively of Conifers. The Mesozoic period, as a whole, is charac- terised by the prevalence of the Cryptogamic group of the Ferns, and the Gymnospermic groups of the Conifers and the Cycads. Up to the close of the Lower Cretaceous, no Angio- spermous Exogens are certainly known to have existed, and Monocotyledonous plants or Endogens are very poorly repre- sented. With the Upper Cretaceous, .however, a new era of plant-life, of which our present is but. the culmination, com- menced, with a great and apparently sudden development of new forms. In place of the Ferns, Cycads, and Conifers of the earlier Mesozoic deposits, we have now an astonishingly large number of true Angiospermous Exogens, many of them belonging to existing types ; and along with these are various Monocotyle- donous plants, including the first examples of the great and im- "cotyledon." Hence these plants are often simply called "Monocotyledons" The Exogens, on the other hand, have a true bark ; and the stem increases by annual additions- to the outside, so that rings of growth are produced. The young plant has two seed-leaves or "cotyledons," and these plants are therefore called "Dicotyledons" Amongst the Exogens, the Pines (Conifers] and the Cycads have seeds which are unprotected by a seed- vessel, and they are therefore called " Gynmosperms. " All the other Exogens, including the ordinary trees, shrubs, and flowering plants, have the seeds enclosed in a seed-vessel, and are therefore called "Anglo- sperms.''1 The derivation of these terms will be found in the Glossary at the end of the volume. THE CRETAOEOUS PERIOD. 263 portant group of the Palms. It is thus a matter of interest to reflect that plants closely related to those now inhabiting the Fig. i £6 — Cretaceous Angiosperms. a, Sassafras Cretacenm; b, Liriodendron iMeekji', c, Legrtminosites Marcouanus ; d, Salix Meekii. (After Dana.) earth, were in existence at a time when the ocean was tenanted by Ammonites and Belemnites, and when land and sea and air were peopled by the extraordinary extinct Reptiles of the Mesozoic period. As regards animal life, the Protozoans of the Cretaceous period are exceedingly numerous, and are represented by Fora- minifera and Sponges. As we have already seen, the White Chalk itself is a deep-sea deposit, almost entirely composed of the microscopic shells of Foraminifers, along with Sponge- spicules, and organic debris of different kinds (see p. 22, fig. 7). The green grains which are so abundant in several minor sub- divisions of the Cretaceous, are also in many instances really casts in glauconite of the chambered shells of these minute organisms. A great many species of Foraminifera have been recognised in the Chalk ; but the three principal genera are 264 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. Globigeriria, Rotalia (fig. 187), and Textularia — groups which are likewise characteristic of the " ooze " of the Atlantic and Fig. 187. — Rotalia Boueana. Pacific Oceans at great depths. The flints of the Chalk also commonly contain the shells of Foraminifera. The Upper Greensand has yielded in considerable numbers the huge Foraminifera described by Dr Carpenter under the name of Parkeria, the spherical shells of which are composed of sand- grains agglutinated together, and sometimes attain a diameter of two and a quarter inches. The Cretaceous Sponges are extremely numerous, and occur under a great number of varie- ties of shape and structure ; but the two most characteristic genera are Siphonia and Ventriculites, both of which are ex- clusively confined to strata of this age. The SiphonicE (fig. 1 88) consist of a pear-shaped, sometimes lobed head, supported by a longer or shorter stem, which breaks up at its base into a number of root-like processes of attachment. The water gained access to the interior of the Sponge by a number of minute openings covering the surface, and ultimately escaped by a single, large, chimney- shaped aperture at the summit. In some respects these sponges present a singular resemblance to the beautiful " Vitreous Sponges " (ffoltenia or Pheronema) of the deep Atlantic ; and, like these, they were probably denizens of a deep sea. The Ventriculites of the Chalk (fig. 189) is, hovveyer, a genus still more closely allied to the wonderful flinty Sponges, which have been shown, by the researches of the Porcupine, Lightning, and Challenger expeditions, to live half buried in the calcareous ooze of the abysses of our great oceans. Many forms of this genus are known, having " usu- ally the form of graceful vases, tubes, or funnels, variously ridged or grooved, or otherwise ornamented on the surface, frequently expanded above into a cup-like lip, and continued below into a bundle of fibrous roots. The minute structure of these bodies shows an extremely delicate tracery of fine tubes, sometimes empty, sometimes filled with loose calcareous mat- THE CRETACEOUS PERIOD. 265 ter dyed with peroxide of iron."— (Sir Wyville Thomson.) Many of the Chalk sponges, originally calcareous, have been converted into flint subsequently ; but the Ventriculites are Fig. 188. — Siphoniaficus. Upper Greensand, Europe. Fig. 189. — Ventriculites simplex. White Chalk, Britain. really composed of this substance, and are therefore genuine "Siliceous Sponges," like the existing Venus's Flower-Basket (Euplectella). Like the latter, the skeleton was doubtless ori- ginally composed, in the young state, of disconnected six- rayed spicules, which ultimately become fixed together to constitute a continuous frame-work. The sea-water, as in the recent forms, must have been admitted to the interior of the Sponge by numerous apertures on its exterior, subsequently escaping by a single large opening at its summit. Amongst the Ccelenteratcs, the " Hydroid Zoophytes " are represented by a species of the encrusting genus Hydractinia, the horny polypary of which is so commonly found at the present day adhering to the exterior of shells. The occurrence of this genus is of interest, because it is the first known instance in the entire geological series of the occurrence of an unques- tionable Hydroid of a modern type, though many of the exist- ing forms of these animals possess structures which are per- 266 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. fectly fitted for preservation in the fossil condition. The corals of the Cretaceous series are not very numerous, and for the most part are referable to types such as Trochocyathus, Stephano- phyllia, Parasmilia, Synhelia (fig. 190), . — Valuta elongata. White Chalk. zoic Nerintza, we meet with examples of such modern types as Turritella and Natica, the Staircase-shells (Silarium], the Wentle-traps (Scalaria), the Carrier-shells (P/wrus), &c. To- wards the close of the Cretaceous period, and especially in such transitional strata as the Maestricht beds, the Faxoe Limestone, and the Pisolitic Limestone of France, we meet with a number of carnivorous (" siphonostomatous ") Uni- valves, in which the mouth of the shell is notched or pro- duced into a canal. Amongst these it is interesting to recognise examples of such existing genera as the Volutes (Valuta, fig. 200), the Cowries (Cyprcea], the Mitre-shells (Mitra), the Wing - shells (Strombus], the Scorpion - shells (P.eroceras), &c. 2/2 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. Upon the whole, the most characteristic of all the Creta- ceous Molluscs are the Cephalopods, represented by the remains of both Tetrabranchiate and Dibranchiate forms. Amongst the former, the long-lived genus Nautilus (fig. 201) again reap- Fig. 201. — Different views of Nautilus Danicus. Faxoe Limestone (Upper Cretaceous), Denmark. pears, with its involute shell, its capacious body-chamber, its simple septa between the air-chambers, and its nearly or quite central siphuncle. The majority of the chambered Cephalo- pods of the Cretaceous belong, however, to the complex and beautiful family of the Ammonitidce, with their elaborately- folded and lobed septa and dorsally-placed siphuncle. This family disappears wholly at the close of the Cretaceous period ; but its approaching extinction, so far from being signalised by any slow decrease and diminution in the number of specific or generic types, seems to have been attended by the develop- ment of whole series of new forms. The genus Ammonites itself, dating from the Carboniferous, has certainly passed its prime, but it is still represented by many species, and some of these attained enormous dimensions (two or three feet in diameter). The genus Ancyloceras (fig. 202), though likewise of more ancient origin (Jurassic), is nevertheless very charac- teristic of the Cretaceous. In this genus the first portion of the shell is in the form of a flat spiral, the coils of which are not in contact ; and its last portion is produced at a tangent, becoming ultimately bent back in the form of a crosier. Be- sides these pre - existent types, the Cretaceous rocks have yielded a great number of entirely new forms of the Ammoni- tida, which are not known in any deposits of earlier or later date. Amongst the more important of these may be men- tioned Crioceras, Turrililcs, Scaphites, Hamites, Ptychoceras, THE CRETACEOUS PERIOD. 2/3 and B acuities. In the genus Crioceras (fig. 204, d), the shell consists of an open spiral, the volutions of which are not in Fig. 202 . — A ncyloceras contact, thus resembling a partially-unrolled Ammonite or the inner portion of an Ancyloceras. In - Turrilites (fig. 203), the shell is precisely like that of the Ammonite in its structure ; but instead of forming a flat spiral, it is coiled into an ele- vated turreted shell, the whorls of which are in contact with one another. In the genus Scaphites (fig. 204, e), the shell resembles that of Ancyloceras in consisting of a series of volu- tions coiled into a flat spiral, the last being detached from the others, produced, and ultimately bent back in the form of a crosier; but the whorls of the enrolled part of the shell are in contact, instead of being separate as in the latter. In the genus Hamites (fig. 204, /), the shell is an extremely elongated cone, which is bent upon itself more than once, in a hook-like manner, all the volutions being separate. The genus Ptycho- ceras (fig. 204, a) is very like Hamites, except that the shell is only bent once ; and the two portions thus bent are in contact with one another. Lastly, in the genus Baculites (fig. 204, b and c) the shell is simply a straight elongated cone, not bent in any way, but possessing the folded septa which characterise the whole Ammonite family. The Baculite is the simplest of .all the forms of the Ammonitidce; and all the other forms, how- ever complex, may be regarded as being simply produced by the bending or folding of such a conical septate shell in differ- ent ways. The Baculite, therefore, corresponds, in the series of the Ammonitidce, to the Orthoceras in the series of the Nau- tilidce. All the above-mentioned genera are characteristically, or exclusively, Cretaceous, and they are accompanied by a number of other allied forms, which cannot be noticed here. Not a single one of these genera, further, has hitherto been detected in any strata higher than the Cretaceous. We may therefore consider that these wonderful, varied, and elaborate 2/4 HISTORICAL PAL/EOXTOLOGY. forms of Ammoniiida constitute one of the most conspicuous features in the life of the Chalk period. The Dibranchiate Cephalopods are represented partly by the Fig. 203. — Turrilitcs cate- natus. The lower figure rep- resents the entire shell ; the upper figure represents the base of the shell seen from below. Gault. Fig. 204. — a, Ptychoceras Emericlannm, reduced —Lower Greensand; b, Baculites anceps, reduced — Chalk ; c, Portion of the same, showing the folded edges of the septa ; d, Crioceras cristatum, reduced —Gault ; e, Scaphites a-qnalis, natural size — Chalk ; /, Hamites rotnndus, restored— Gault. beak like jaws of unknown species of Cuttle-fishes and partly by the internal skeletons of Belemnites. Amongst the latter, the genus Belemnites itself holds its place in the lower part of THE CRETACEOUS PERIOD. 275 the Cretaceous series ; but it disappears in the upper portion of the series, and its place is taken by the nearly-allied genus Belemnitella (fig. 205), distinguished by the possession of a straight fissure in the upper end of the guard. This also disappears at the close of the Cretaceous period; and no member of the great Mesozoic family of the Belemmtidce has hitherto been dis- covered in any Tertiary deposit, or is known to exist at the present day. Passing on next to the Vertebrate Animals of the Cretaceous period, we find the Fishes represented as before by the Ganoids and the Placoids, to which, however, we can now add the first known examples of the great group of the Bony Fishes or Teleosteans, comprising the great majority of existing forms. The Ganoid fishes of the Cretaceous (Lepidotus, Pycnodus, &c ) present no features of special in- terest. Little, also, need be said about the Placoid fishes of this period. As in the Jurassic deposits, the remains of these consist partly of the teeth of genuine Sharks (Lamna, Odontaspis,&c.\ and partly of the teeth and defensive spines of Cestracionts, such as the living Port -Jackson Shark. The pointed and sharp- edged teeth of true Sharks are very abundant in some beds, such as the Upper Greensand, and are beautifully preserved. The teeth of some forms (CarchaHas, &c.) attain occasionally a length of three or four inches, and indicate the existence in the Cretaceous seas of huge predaceous fishes, probably larger than any existing Sharks. The remains of Cestracionts consist partly of the flattened teeth of genera such as Acrodus and Ptychodus (the latter confined to rocks of this age), and partly of the pointed teeth of Hybodus, a genus which dates from the Trias. In this genus the teeth (fig. 206) consist of a principal central cone, flanked by minor lateral cones; and the fin- Fig. 205.— Guard of Belemnitflla mucronata. White Chalk. Fig. 206.— Tooth of Hybodus, Fig. 207. — Fin-spine of Hybodns. Lower Greensand. spines (fig. 207) are longitudinally grooved, and carry a series of small spines on their hinder or concave margin. Lastly, 276 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. the great modern order of the Bony Fishes or Teleosteans makes its first appearance in the Upper Cretaceous rocks, where it is represented by forms belonging to no less than three existing groups — namely, the Salmon family (Sal- monidce], the Herring family (Clupeida), and the Perch family (Peradce). All these fishes have thin, horny, overlapping Fig. 208. — i, Beryx Lewesiensis, a Percoid fish from the Chalk ; 2, Osmeroides Mantela, a Salmonoid fish from the Chalk. scales, symmetrical (" homocercal") tails, and bony skeletons. The genus Beryx (fig. 208, i) is one represented by existing species at the present day, and belongs to the Perch family. The genus Osmeroides, again (fig. 208, 2), is supposed to be related to the living Smelts (Osmerus), and, therefore, to belong to the Salmon tribe. No remains of Amphibians have hitherto been detected in any part of the Cretaceous series ; but Reptiles are extremely numerous, and belong to very varied types. As regards the great extinct groups of Reptiles which characterise the Meso- zoic period as a whole, the huge " Enaliosaurs " or " Sea- Lizards " are still represented by the Ichthyosaur and the Plesiosanr. Nearly allied to the latter of these is the Elas- mosaurus of the American Cretaceous, which combined the THE CRETACEOUS PERIOD. 277 long tail of the Ichthyosaur with the long neck of the Plesio- saur. The length of this monstrous Reptile could not have been less than fifty feet, the neck consisting of over sixty vertebrae and measuring over twenty feet in length. The extraordinary Flying Reptiles of the Jurassic are likewise well represented in the Cretaceous rocks by species of the genus Pterodactyl us itself, and these later forms are much more gigantic in their dimensions than their predecessors. Thus some of the Cretaceous Pterosaurs seem to have had a spread of wing of from twenty to twenty-five feet, more than realising the " Dragons " of fable in point of size. The most remark- able, however, of the Cretaceous Pterosaurs are the forms which have recently been described by Professor Marsh under the generic title 01" Pteranodon. In these singular forms — so far only known as American — the animal possessed a skeleton in all respects similar to that of the typical Pterodactyles, except that the jaws are completely destitute of teeth. There is, therefore, the strongest probability that the jaws were encased in a horny sheath, thus coming to resemble the beak of a Bird. Some of the recognised species of Pteranodon are very small ; but the skull of one species (P. longiccps] is not less than a yard in length, and there are portions of the skull of another species which would indicate a length of four feet for the cranium. These measurements would point to dimen- sions larger than those of any other known Pterosaurs. The great Mesozoic order of the Deinosaurs is largely rep- resented in the Cretaceous rocks, partly by genera which previously existed in the Jurassic period, and partly by entirely new types. The great delta-deposit of the Wealden, in the Old World, has yielded the remains of various of these huge terrestrial Reptiles, and very many others have been found in the Cretaceous deposits of North America. One of the most celebrated of the Cretaceous Deinosaurs is the Iguanodon, so called from the curious resemblance of its teeth to those of the existing but comparatively diminutive Iguana. The teeth (fig. 209) are soldered to the inner face of the jaw, instead of being sunk in distinct sockets; and they have the form of somewhat flattened prisms, longitudinally ridged on the outer surface, with an obtusely triangular crown, and having the enamel crenated on one or both sides. They present the extraordinary feature that the crowns became worn down flat by mastication, showing that the Iguanodon employed its teeth in actually chewing and triturating the vegetable matter on which it fed. There can therefore be no doubt but that the Iguanodon, in spite of its immense bulk, was an herbivorous Reptile, and 278 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. lived principally on the foliage of the Cretaceou-s forests amongst which it dwelt. Its size has been variously estimated Fig. 209. — Teeth of Ignanodon Mantellii. Wealden, Britain. at from thirty to fifty feet, the thigh-bone in large examples measuring nearly five feet in length, with a circumference of twenty-two inches in its smallest part. With the strong and massive hind-limbs are associated comparatively weak and small fore-limbs ; and there seems little reason to doubt that the Ignanodon must have walked temporarily or permanently upon its hind-limbs, after the manner of a Bird. This conjec- ture is further supported by the occurrence in the strata which contain the bones of the Ignanodon of gigantic three-toed foot- prints, disposed singly in a double track. These prints have undoubtedly been produced by some animal walking on two legs; and they can hardly, with any probability, be ascribed to any other than this enormous Reptile. Closely allied to the Iguanodon is the Hadrosaurus of the American Cretaceous, the length of which is estimated at twenty- eight feet. Ignanodon does not appear to have possessed any integumentary skeleton; but the great Hylceosaurus of the Wealden seems to have been furnished with a longitudinal crest of large spines running down the back, similar to that which is found in the compara- tively small Iguanas of the present day. The Megalosaurus of the Oolites continued to exist in the Cretaceous period; and, as we have previously seen, it was carnivorous in its habits. The American Lcelaps was also carnivorous, and, like the Megalosaur, THE CRETACEOUS PERIOD. 279 which it very closely resembles, appears to have walked upon its hind-legs, the fore-limbs being disproportionately small. Another remarkable group of Reptiles, exclusively confined to the Cretaceous series, is that of the Mosasauroids, so called from the type-genus Mosasaurus. The first species of Mosa- saurus known to science was the M. Camperi (fig. 210), the Fig. 210. — Skull of Mosasaurus Camperi, greatly reduced Maestricht Chalk. skull of which — six feet in length — was discovered in 1780 in the Maestricht Chalk at Maestricht. As this town stands on the river Meuse, the name of Mosasaurus (" Lizard of the Meuse") was applied to this immense Reptile. Of late years the remains of a large number of Reptiles more or less closely related to Mosasaurus, or absolutely belonging to it, have been discovered in the Cretaceous deposits of North America, and have been described by Professors Cope and Marsh. All the known forms of this group appear to have been of large size — one of them, Mosasaurus princeps, attaining the length of seventy-five or eighty feet, and thus rivalling the largest of ex- isting Whales in its dimensions. The teeth in the " Mosa- sauroids " are long, pointed, and slightly curved ; and instead of being sunk in distinct sockets, they are firmly amalgamated with the jaws, as in modern Lizards. The palate also carried teeth, and the lower jaw was so constructed as to allow of the mouth being opened to an immense width, somewhat as in the living Serpents. The body was long and snake-like, with a very long tail, which is laterally compressed, and must have served as a powerful swimming-apparatus. In addition to this, both Dairs of limbs have the bones connecting them with the 280 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. trunk greatly shortened ; whilst the digits were enclosed in the integuments, and constituted paddles, closely resembling in structure the " flippers" of Whales and Dolphins. The neck is sometimes moderately long, but oftener very short, as the great size and weight of the head wouLd have led one to anti- cipate. Bony plates seem in some species to have formed an at any rate partial covering to the skin ; but it is not certain that these integumentary appendages were present in all. Up- on the whole, there can be no doubt but that the Mosasauroid Reptiles — the true " Sea-serpents " of the Cretaceous period — • were essentially aquatic in their habits, frequenting the sea, and only occasionally coming to the land. The " Mosasauroids " have generally been regarded as a greatly modified group of the Lizards (Lacertilia). Whether this reference be correct or not — and recent investigations render it dubious — the Cretaceous rocks have yielded the remains of small Lizards not widely removed from existing forms. The recent order of the Chdonians is also represented in the Cretaceous rocks, by forms closely re- sembling living types. Thus the fresh - water deposits of the Wealden have yielded examples of the "Terrapins" or " Mud-Turtles" (Emys); and the marine Creta- ceous strata have been found to contain the remains of various spe- cies of Turtles, one of which is here figured (fig. 211). No true Serpents ( (9//«V//# )have as yet been detected in the Cretaceous rocks; and this order does not appear to have come into existence till the Tertiary period. Last- ly, true Crocodiles are known to have existed in considerable num- bers in the Cretaceous period. The oldest of these occur in the fresh-water deposit of the WTealden; and they differ from Fig. 211. — Carapace of Chelone Benstedi. Lower Chalk. (After Owen.) THE CRETACEOUS PERIOD. 28 1 the existing forms of the group in the fact that the bodies of the vertebrae, like those of the Jurassic Crocodiles, are bi-concave, or hollowed out at both ends. In the Greensand of North America, however, occur the remains of Crocodiles which agree with all the living species in having the bodies of the vertebrae in the region of the back hollowed out in front and convex behind. Birds have not hitherto been shown, with certainty, to have existed in Europe during the Cretaceous period, except in a few instances in which fragmentary remains belonging to this class have been discovered. The Cretaceous deposits of North America have, however, been shown by Professor Marsh to contain a considerable number of the remains of Birds, often in a state of excellent preservation. Some of these belong to Swimming or Wading Birds, differing in no point of special interest from modern birds of similar habits. Others, however, exhibit such extraordinary peculiarities that they merit more than a passing notice. One of the forms in question constitutes the genus Ichthyornis of Marsh, the type- species of which (/. dispar) was about as large as a Pigeon. In two remarkable respects, this singular Bird differs from all known living members of the class. One of these respects concerns the jaws, both of which exhibit the Reptilian char- acter of being armed with numerous small pointed teeth (fig. 2 1 2, a), sunk in distinct sockets. No existing bird possesses teeth ; and this character forcibly recalls the Bird-like Ptero- saurs, with their toothed jaws. Ichthyornis, however, possessed fore-limbs constructed strictly on the type of the "wing" of the living Birds; and it cannot, therefore, be separated from this class. Another extraordinary peculiarity of Ichthyornis is, that the bodies of the vertebra (fig. 212, c) were bi-concave, as is the case with many extinct Reptiles and almost all Fishes, but as does not occur in any living Bird. There can be little doubt that Ichthyornis was aquatic in its habits, and that it lived prin- cipally upon fishes ; but its powerful wings at the same time indicate that it was capable of prolonged flight. The tail of Ichthyornis has, unfortunately, not been discovered ; and it is at present impossible to say whether this resembled the tail of existing Birds, or whether it was elongated and composed of separate vertebrae, as in the Jurassic Archceopteryx. Still more wonderful than Ichthyornis is the marvellous bird described by Marsh under the name of Hesperornis regalis. This presents us with a gigantic diving bird, somewhat re- sembling the existing "Loons" (Colymbus], but agreeing with Ichthvornis in having the jaws furnished with conical, 282 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. recurved, pointed teeth (fig. 212, b\ Hence these forms are grouped together in a new sub-class, under the name of Odon- tornithes or " Toothed Birds." The teeth of Hesperornis (fig. 212, d) resemble those of Ichthyornis in their general form; Fig. 212. — Toothed Birds {Odontoniithes) of the Cretaceous Rocks of America, a, Left lower jaw of Ichthyornis dispar, slightly enlarged ; b, Left lower jaw of Hesperornis regalis, reduced to nearly one-fourth of the natural size ; c, Cervical vertebra of Ichthyornis dispar, front view, twice the natural size ; c1, Side view of the same ; dt Tooth of Hesper- ornis regalis, enlarged to twice the natural size. (After Marsh.) but instead of being sunk in distinct sockets, they are simply implanted in a deep continuous groove in the bony substance of the jaw. The front of the upper jaw does not carry teeth, and was probably encased in a horny beak. The breast-bone is entirely destitute of a central ridge or keel, and the wings are minute and quite rudimentary ; so that Hesperornis^ unlike Ichthyornis, must have been wholly deprived of the power of flight, in this respect approaching the existing Penguins. The tail consists of about twelve vertebrae, of which the last three or four are amalgamated to form a flat terminal mass, there being at the same time clear indications that the tail was capable of up and down movement in a vertical plane, this proba- bly fitting it to serve as a swimming-paddle or rudder. The legs were powerfully constructed, and the feet were adapted to assist the bird in rapid motion through the water. The known remains ^Hesperornis regalis prove it to have been a swim- ming and diving bird, of larger dimensions than any of the THE CRETACEOUS PERIOD. 283 aquatic members of the class of Birds with which we are ac- quainted at the present day. It appears to have stood between five and six feet high, and its inability to fly is fully compen- sated for by the numerous adaptations of its structure to a watery life. Its teeth prove it to have been carnivorous in its habits, and it probably lived upon fishes. It is a curious fact that two Birds agreeing with one another in the wholly abnor- mal character of possessing teeth, and in other respects so entirely different, should, like Ichtliyornis and Hesperornis, have lived not only in the same geological period, but also in the same geographical area ; and it is equally curious that the area inhabited by these toothed Birds should at the same time have been tenanted by winged and bird-like Reptiles belonging to the toothed genus Pterodactylus and the toothless genus Pteranodon. No remains of Mammals, finally, have as yet been detected in any sedimentary accumulations of Cretaceous age. LITERATURE. The following list comprises some of the more important works and memoirs which may be consulted with reference to the Cretaceous strata and their fossil contents : — (1) ' Memoirs of the Geological Survey of Great Britain.' (2) 'Geology of England arid Wales.' Conybeare and Phillips. (3) ' Geology of Yorkshire,' vol. ii. Phillips. (4) 'Geology of Oxford and the Thames Valley.' Phillips. (5) ' Geological Excursions through the Isle of Wight.' Mantell. (6) ' Geology of Sussex.' Mantell. (7) ' Report on Londonderry,' &c. Portlock. (8) 'Recherches sur le Terrain Cretace Superieur de 1* Angle terre et de 1'Irlande.' Barrpis. (9) " Geological Survey of Canada " — ' Report of Progress, 1872-73.' (10) ' Geological Survey of California.' Whitney. (n) 'Geological Survey of Montana, Idaho, Wyoming, and Utah.' Hayden and Meek. (12) 'Report on Geology,' &c. (British North American Boundary Commission). G. M. Dawson. (13) 'Manual of Geology.' Dana. (14) ' Lethsea Rossica. ' Eichwald. (15) ' Petrefacta Germanise.' Goldfuss. (16) 'Fossils of the South Downs.' Mantell. (17) 'Medals, of Creation.' Mantell. (18) ' Mineral Conchology.' Sowerby. (19) ' Lethaea Geognostica.' Bronn. (20) ' Malacostracous Crustacea of the British Cretaceous Formation' (Palaeontographical Society). Bell. Brachiopoda of t (21) 'Brachiopoda of the Cretaceous Formation' (Palaeontographical Society). Davidson. (22) 'Corals of the Cretaceous Formation' (Paleeontographical Society). Mi 'ne-Edwards and Haime. 284 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. (23) ' Supplement to the Fossil Corals ' (Palaeontographical Society). Martin Duncan. (24) ' Echinodermata of the Cretaceous Formation' (Palseontographical Society). Wright. (25) 'Monograph of the Belemnitidae ' (Palaeontographical Society). Phillips. (26) 'Monograph of the Trigoniae ' (Palaeontographical Society). Lycett. (27) ' Fossil Cirripedes ' (Pabeontographical Society). Darwin. (28) ' Fossil Mollusca of the Chalk of Britain ' (Palaeontographical Society). Sharpe. (29) ' Entomostraca of the Cretaceous Formation' (Palaeontographical Society). Rupert Jones. (30) ' Monograph of the Fossil Reptiles of the Cretaceous Formation ' (Palaeontographical Society). Owen. (31) ' Manual of Palaeontology.' Owen. (32) ' Synopsis of Extinct Batrachia and Reptilia.' Cope. (33) "Structure of the Skull and Limbs in Mosasauroid Reptiles "- ' American Journ. Sci. and Arts, 1872.' Marsh. (34) "On Odontornithes " — 'American Journ. Sci. and Arts, 1875.' Marsh. (35) 'Ossemens Fossiles.' Cuvier. (36) 'Catalogue of Ornithosauria.' Seeley. (37) ' Paleontologie Francaise. ' D'Orbigny. (38) 'Synopsis des Echinides fossiles.' Desor. (39) 'Cat. Raisonne des Echinides.' Agassiz and Desor. (40) ' ' Echinoids " — ' Decades of the Geol. Survey of Britain. ' E. Forbes. (41) ' Paleontologie Francaise.' Cotteau. (42) ' Versteinerungen der Bohmischen Kreide-formation.' Reuss. (43) "Cephalopoda, Gasteropoda, Pelecypoda, Brachiopoda, &c., of the Cretaceous Rocks of India" — ' Palseontologica Indica,' ser. i., iii., v., vi., viii. Stoliczka. . (44) "Cretaceous Reptiles of the United States" — 'Smithsonian Contri- butions to Knowledge,' vol. xiv. Leidy. (45) ' Invertebrate Cretaceous, and Tertiary Fossils of the Upper Mis- souri Country.' 1876. Meek. CHAPTER XVIII. THE EOCENE PERIOD. Before commencing the study of the subdivisions of the Kainozoic series, there are some general considerations to be noted. In the first place, there is in the Old World a com- plete and entire physical break between the rocks of the Mesozoic and Kainozoic periods. In no instance in Europe are Tertiary strata to be found resting conformably upon any Secondary rock. The Chalk has invariably suffered much erosion and denudation before the lowest Tertiary strata were deposited upon it. This is shown by the fact that the actually THE EOCENE PERIOD. 285 eroded surface of the Chalk can often be seen ; or, failing this, that we can point to the presence of the chalk-flints in the Tertiary strata. This last, of course, affords unquestionable proof that the Chalk must have been subjected to enormous denudation prior to the formation of the Tertiary beds, all the chalk itself having been removed, and nothing left but the flints, while these are all rolled and rounded. In the continent of North America, on the other hand, the lowest Tertiary strata have been shown to graduate downwards conformably with the highest Cretaceous beds, it being a matter of difficulty to draw a precise line of demarcation between the two formations. In the second place, there is a marked break in the life of the Mesozoic and Kainozoic periods. With the exception of a few Foraminifera, and one Brachiopod (the latter doubtful), no Cretaceous species is known to have survived the Creta- ceous period; while several characteristic families, such as the Ammonitidcz, Belemnitidcz, and Hippuritid&i died out entirely with the close of the Cretaceous rocks. In the Tertiary rocks, on the other hand, not only are all the animals and plants more or less like existing types, but we meet with a constantly- increasing number of living species as we pass from the bottom of the Kainozoic series to the top. Upon tin's last fact is founded the modern classification of the Kainozoic rocks, propounded by Sir Charles Lyell. The absence in strata of Tertiary age of the chambered Cephalopods, the Belemnites, the Hippuritcs, the Inocerami, and the diversified types of Reptiles which form such con- spicuous features in the Cretaceous fauna, render the palaeon- tological break between the Chalk and the Eocene one far too serious to be overlooked. At the same time, it is to be re- membered that the evidence afforded by the explorations car- ried out of late years as to the animal life of the deep sea, ren- ders it certain that the extinction of marine forms of life at the close of the Cretaceous period was far less extensive than had been previously assumed. It is tolerably certain, in fact, that we may look upon some of the inhabitants of the depths of our existing oceans as the direct, if modified, descendants of ani- malsxwhich were in existence when the Chalk was deposited. It follows from the general want of conformity between the Cretaceous and Tertiary rocks, and still more from the great difference in life, that the Cretaceous and Tertiary periods. are separated, in the Old World at any rate, by an enormous lapse of unrepresented time. How long this interval may have been, we have no means of judging exactly, but it very possibly was as long as the whole Kainozoic epoch, itself. Seme day we 20 286 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. shall doubtless find, at some part of the earth's surface, marine strata which were deposited during this period, and which will contain fossils intermediate in character between the organic, remains which respectively characterise the Secondary and Tertiary periods. At present, we have only slight traces of such deposits — as, for instance, the Maestricht beds, the Faxoe Limestone, and the Pisolitic Limestone of France. CLASSIFICATION OF THE TERTIARY ROCKS. — The classifica- tion of the Tertiary rocks is a matter of unusual difficulty, in consequence of their occurring in disconnected basins, form- ing a series of detached areas, which hold no relations of superposition to one another. The order, therefore, of the Tertiaries in point of time, can only be determined by an ap- peal to fossils ; and in such determination Sir Charles Lyell proposed to take as the basis of classification the proportion of living or existing species of Mollusca which occurs in each stratum or group of strata. Acting upon this principle, Sir Charles Lyell divides the Tertiary series into four groups : — I. The Eocene formation (Or. eos, dawn ; kainos, new), con- taining the smallest proportion of existing species, and being, therefore, the oldest division. In this classification, only the Mollusca are taken into account ; and it was found that of these about three and a half per cent were identical with ex- isting species. II. The Miocene formation (Gr. melon, less; kainos, new), with more recent species than the Eocene, but less than the suc- ceeding formation, and less than one-half the total number in the formation. As before, only the Mollusca are taken into account, and about 17 per cent of these agree with existing species. III. The Pliocene formation (Gr. pleion, more; kainos, new), with generally more than half the species of shells identical with existing species — the proportion of these varying from 35 to 50 per cent in the lower beds of this division, up to 90 or 95 per cent in its higher portion. IV. The Post- Tertiary Formations, in which all the shells belong to existing species. This, in turn, is divided into two minor groups — the Post-Pliocene and Recent Formations. In the Post-Pliocene formations, while all the Mollusca belong to existing species, most of the Mammals belong to extinct species. In the Recent period, the quadrupeds, as well as the shells, belong to living species. The above, with some modifications, was the original classi- fication proposed by Sir Charles Lyell for the Tertiary rocks, and now universally accepted. More recent researches, it is true, have somewhat altered the proportions of existing species THE EOCENE PERIOD. 287 to extinct, as stated above. The general principle, however, of an increase in the number of living species, still holds good ; and this is as yet the only satisfactory basis upon which it has been proposed to arrange the Tertiary deposits. EOCENE FORMATION. The Eocene rocks are the lowest of the Tertiary series, and comprise all those Tertiary deposits in which there is only a small proportion of existing Mollnsca — from three and a half to five per cent. The Eocene rocks occur in several basins in Britain, France, the Netherlands, and other parts of Europe, and in the United States. The subdivisions which have been established are extremely numerous, and it is often impossible to parallel those of one basin with those of another. It will be sufficient, therefore, to accept the division of the Eocene formation into three great groups — Lower, Middle, and Upper Eocene — and to consider some of the more important beds comprised under these heads in Europe and in North America. I. EOCENE OF BRITAIN, (i.) LOWER EOCENE. — The base of the Eocene series in Britain is constituted by about 90 feet of light-coloured, sometimes argillaceous sands (Thanet Sands), which are of marine origin. Above these, or forming the base of the formation where these are wanting,- come mottled clays and sands with lignite ( Woolwich and .Reading series), which are estuarine or fluvio-marine in origin. The highest member of the Lower Eocene of Britain is the "London Clay" consist- ing of a great mass of dark-brown or blue clay, sometimes with sandy beds, or with layers of " septaria," the whole attaining a thickness of from 200 to as much as' 500 feet. The London Clay is a purely marine deposit, containing many marine fossils, with the remains of terrestrial animals and plants ; all of which indicate a high temperature of the sea and tropical or sub- tropical conditions of the land. (2.) MIDDLE EOCENE. — The inferior portion of the Middle Eocene of Britain consists of marine beds, chiefly consisting of sand, clays, and gravels, and attaining a very considerable thickness (Bagshot and Bracklesham beds). The superior por- tion of the Middle Eocene of Britain, on the other hand, con- sists of deposits which are almost exclusively fresh-water, or brackish-water in origin {Ifeadon and Osborne series). The chief Continental formations of Middle Eocene age are the " Calcaire grossier" of the Paris basin, and the "Num- mulitic Limestone " of the Alps. (3.) UPPER EOCENE.— If the Headon and Osborne beds of 288 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. the Isle of Wight be placed in the Middle Eocene, the only British representatives of the Upper Eocene are the Bembridge beds. These strata consist of limestones, clays, and marls, which have for the most part been deposited in fresh or brack- ish water. II. EOCENE BEDS OF THE PARIS BASIN. — The Eocene strata are very well developed in the neighbourhood of Paris, where they occupy a large area or basin scooped out of the Chalk. The beds of this area are partly marine, partly fresh- water in origin ; and the following table (after Sir Charles Lyell) shows their subdivisions and their parallelism with the English series : — GENERAL TABLE OF FRENCH EOCENE STRATA. UPPER EOCENE. French Subdivisions. English Equivalents. A. I. Gypseous series of Mont- I. Bembridge series. martre. A. 2. Calcaire silicieux, or Tra- 2. Osborne and Headon series. vertin Inferieur. A. 3. Gres de Beauchamp, or 3. White sand and clay of Barton Sables Moyens. Cliff, Hants. MIDDLE EOCENE. B. I. Calcaire Grossier. i. Bagshot and Bracklesham beds. B. 2. Soissonnais Sands, or Lits 2. Wanting. Coquiliievs. LOWER EOCENE. C. I. Argilede Londres at base of i. London clay. Hill of Cassel, near Dun- kirk. C. 2. Argile plastique and lignite. 2. Plastic clay and sand with lig- nite (Woolwich and Reading series). C. 3. Sables de Braclieux. 3 Thanet sands. III. EOCENE STRATA OF THE UNITED STATES. — The low- est member of the Eocene deposits of North America is the so-called " Lignitic Formation" which is largely developed in Mississippi, Tennessee, Arkansas, Wyoming, Utah, Colorado, and California, and sometimes attains a thickness of several thousand feet. Stratigraphically, this formation exhibits the interesting point that it graduates downwards insensibly and conformably into the Cretaceous, whilst it is succeeded uncon- formably by strata of Middle Eocene age. Lithologically, the series consists principally of sands and clays, with beds of lig- nite and coal, and its organic remains show that it is principally of fresh-water origin with a partial intermixture of marine beds. THE EOCENE PERIOD. 289 These marine strata of the " Lignitic formation " are of special interest, as showing such a commingling of Cretaceous and Tertiary types of life, that it is impossible to draw any rigid line in this region between the Mesozoic and Kainozoic sys- tems. Thus the marine beds of the Lignitic series contain such characteristic Cretaceous forms as Inoceramus and Am- monites, along with a great number of Univalves of a distinctly Tertiary type (Cones, Cowries, &c.) Upon the whole, there- fore, we must regard this series of deposits as affording a kind of transition between the Cretaceous and the Eocene, holding in some respects a position which may be compared with that held by the Purbeck beds in Britain as regards the Jurassic and Cretaceous. The Middle Eocene of the United States is represented by the Claiborne and Jackson beds. The Claiborne series is extensively developed at Claiborne, Alabama, and consists of sands, clays, lignites, marls, and impure limestones, containing marine fossils along with numerous plant-remains. The Jack- son series is represented by lignitic clays and marls which occur at Jackson, Mississippi. Amongst the more remarkable fossils of this series are the teeth and bones of Cetaceans of the genus Zcitglodon. Strata of Upper Eocene age occur in North America t,t Vicksburg, Mississippi, and are known as the Vicksbtirg series. They consist of lignites, clays, marls, and limestones. Fresh- water deposits of Eocene age are also largely developed in parts of the Rocky Mountain region. The most remarkable fossils of these beds are Mammals, of which a large number of species have been already determined. LIFE OF THE EOCENE PERIOD. The fossils of the Eocene deposits are so numerous that nothing more can be attempted here than to give a brief and general sketch of the life of the period, special attention being directed to some of the more prominent and interesting types, amongst which — as throughout the Tertiary series — the Mam- mals hold the first place. It is not uncommon, indeed, to speak of the Tertiary period as a whole under the name of the " Age of Mammals," a title at least as well deserved as that of " Age of Reptiles " applied to the Mesozoic, or " Age of Mol- luscs " applied to the Palaeozoic epoch. As regards foe plants of the Eocene, the chief point to be noticed is, that the conditions which had already set in with the commencement of the Upper Cretaceous, are here con- 2QO HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. tinued, and still further enforced. The Cycads of the Secondary period, if they have not totally disappeared, are exceedingly rare ; and the Conifers, losing the predominance which they enjoyed in the Mesozoic, are now relegated to a subordinate though well-defined place in the terrestrial vegetation. The great majority of the Eocene plants are referable to the groups of the Angiospermous Exogens and the Monocotyledons ; and the vegetation of the period, upon the whole, approximates closely to that now existing upon the earth. The plants of the European Eocene are, however, in the main most closely allied to forms which are now characteristic of tropical or sub-tropical regions. Thus, in the London Clay are found numerous fruits of Palms (Nipadites, fig. 213), along with various other plants, most of which indicate a warm climate as prevailing in the south of England at the commencement of the Eocene period. • In the Eocene strata of North America occur numerous plants belong- ing to existing types — such as Palms, Conifers, the Magnolia, Cinnamon, Fig, Dog-wood, Maple, Hickory, Poplar, Plane, £c. Taken as a whole, the Eocene flora of North America is nearly related to that of the Miocene strata of Europe, as well as to that now existing » the American area. We may con- London day, isle of Sheppey. elude, therefore, that "the forests or the American Eocene resembled those of the European Miocene, and even of modern America " (Dana). As regards the animals of the Eocene period, the Protozoans are represented by numerous Foraminifera, which reach here their maximum of development, both as regards the size of individuals and the number of generic types. Many of the Eocene Foraminifers are of small size ; but even these not uncommonly form whole rock-masses. Thus, the so-called " Miliolite Limestone " of the Paris basin, largely used as a building stone, is almost wholly composed of the shells of a small species of Miliola. The most remarkable, however, of the many members of this group of animals which flourished in Eocene times, are the " Nummulites " (Nummulina}^ so called from their resemblance in shape to coins (Lat. minimus^ a coin). The Nummulites are amongst the largest of all known Fora- minifera, sometimes attaining a size of three inches in circum- ference ; and their internal structure is very complex (fig. 214). THE EOCENE PERIOD. 291 Many species are known, and they are particularly character- istic of the Middle and Upper of these periods — their place Fig. 214. — Nnmmulina Icevigata. Middle Eocene. being sometimes taken by Orbitoides, a form very similar to the Nummulite in external appearance, but differing in its internal details. In the Middle Eocene, the remains of Nummulites are found in vast numbers in a very widely-spread and easily- recognised formation known as the "Nummulitic Limestone" (fig. 10). According to Sir Charles Lyell, "the Nummulitic Limestone of the Swiss Alps rises to more than 10,000 feet above the level of the sea, and attains here and in other moun- tain-chains a thickness of several thousand feet. It may be said to play a far more conspicuous part than any other Tertiary group in the solid framework of the earth's crust, whether in Europe, Asia, or Africa. It occurs in Algeria and Morocco, and has been traced from Egypt, where it was largely quarried of old for the building of the Pyramids, into Asia Minor, and across Persia by Bagdad to the mouths of the Indus. It has been observed not only in Cutch, but in the mountain-ranges which separate Scinde from Persia, and which form the passes leading to Cabul ; and it has been followed still further east- ward into India, as far as Eastern Bengal and the frontiers of China." The shells of Nummulites have been found at an elevation of 16,500 feet above the level of the sea in Western Thibet ; and the distinguished and philosophical geologist just quoted, further remarks, that "when we have once arrived at the conviction that the Nummulitic formation occupies a mid- dle and upper place in the Eocene series, we are struck with the comparatively modern date to which some of the greatest revolutions in the physical geography of Europe, Asia, and Northern Africa must be referred. All the mountain-chains — such as the Alps, Pyrenees, Carpathians, and Himalayas — into the composition of whose central and loftiest parts the Num- mulitic strata enter bodily, could have had no existence till 292 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. after the Middle Eocene period. During that period, the sea prevailed where these chains now rise ; for Nummulites and their accompanying Testacea were unquestionably inhabitants of salt water." The Ccelenterates of the Eocene are represented principally by Corals, mostly of types identical with or nearly allied to those now in existence. Perhaps the most characteristic group of these is that of the TurbinoUda, comprising a number of simple u cup corals," which probably lived in moderately deep water. One of the forms belonging to this family is here figured (fig. 215). Besides true Corals, the Eocene deposits have yielded the remains of the " Sea- pens " (Pennatulida) and the branched skeletons of the "Sea-shrubs" (Gorgonidcz). The Echinodertns are represented prin- cipally by Sea-urchins, and demand nothing more than mention. It is to be observed, however, that the great group of the Sea- lilies (Crinoids) is now verging on extinc- tion, and is but very feebly represented. Amongst the Mollusca^e, Polyzoans and Brachiopods also require no special men- tion, beyond the fact that the latter are greatly reduced in numbers, and belong principally to the existing genera Terc- bratula and Rhynchcndla. The Bivalves (Lamdlibranchs] and the Univalves (Ga:~ teropods] are exceedingly numerous, and almost all the principal existing genera are now represented ; though less than five per cent of the Eocene species are identical with those now living. It is difficult to make any selection from the many Bivalves which are known in deposits of this age ; but species of Cardita, Crassatella, Leda, Cyrena, Mactra, Cardinm, Psammobia,&.c.., may be mentioned as very characteristic. The Cardita planicosta here figured (fig. 216) is not only very abundant in the Middle Eocene, but is very widely distri- buted, ranging from Europe to the Pacific coast of North America. The Univalves of the Eocene are extremely nu- merous, and generally beautifully preserved. The majority of them belong to that great section of the Gasteropods in which the mouth of the shell is notched or produced into Fig. 215. — Turbinolin siilcata, viewed from one side, and from above. Eocene. THE EOCENE PERIOD. 293 a canal (when the shell is said to be " siphonostomatous ") — - this section including the carnivorous and most highly- or- Fig. 216.— Cardlta planicosta. Middle Eocene. gani3ed groups of the class. Not only is this the case, but a large number of the Eocene Univalves belong to types which now attain their maximum of development in the warmer regions of the globe. Thus we find numerous species of Cones (Comis), Volutes ( Valuta}, Cowries (Cyprcza, fig. 218), Fi£. 217. — Typhis titb;fer, a "siphonosto- matous " Univalve. Eocene. Fig. 218. — Cy/>ra-a elegans. Eocene. Olives and Rice-shells (Ofiva), Mitre-shells (Mitra\ Trumpet- shells (Triton), Auger-shells (Terebra), and Fig-shells (Pyrula). Along with these are many forms of Plcurotoma, Itostdlaria, Spindle-shells (Fusus), Dog-whelks (Nassa\ Murices, and many round-mouthed (" holostomatous ") species, belonging to such genera as Turritdla, Ncrita, Natica, Scalaria, &c. Hie genus Cerithium (fig. 219), most of the living forms of which are found in warm regions, inhabiting fresh or brackish waters, undergoes a vast development in the Eocene period, where it 294 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. is represented by an immense number of specific forms, some of which attain very large dimensions. In the Eocene strata of the Paris basin alone, nearly one hundred and fifty species of this genus have been detected. The more strictly fresh - water deposits of the Eocene period have also yielded numerous remains of Univalves such as are now proper to rivers and lakes, to- gether with the shells of true Land-snails. Amongst these may be mentioned numerous species of Limneea (fig. 220), Physa (fig. 221), Melania, Paludina, Planorbis, Helix, Buli- mus, and Cydostoma (fig. 222). With regard to the CepJialopods, the chief point to be noticed is, that all the beautiful and complex forms which peculiarly char- acterised the Cretaceous period have here disappeared. We no longer meet with a single example of the Turrilite, the Baculite, the Hamite, the Scaphite, or the Ammonite. The only ex- ception to this statement is the occurrence of one species Fig. zig.—Ceritki- iirtt hexagonum. Eo- cene. Fig. 220. — Limneea pyramidalis. Eocene. Fig. 221.— Physa columnaris. Eocene. Fig. 222. — Cydostoma A rnoitdii. Eocene. of Ammonite in the so-called " Lignitic Formation " of North America ; but the beds containing this may possibly be rather referable to the Cretaceous — and this exception does not affect the fact that the Ammonitida, as a family, had be- come extinct before the Eocene strata were deposited. The ancient genus Nautilus still survives, the sole representative of the once mighty order of the Tetrabranchiate Cephalopods. In the order of the Dibranchiates, we have a like phenomenon to observe in the total extinction of the great family of the " Belemnites." No form referable to this group has hitherto THE EOCENE PERIOD. 295 been found in any Tertiary stratum; but the internal skeletons of Cuttle-fishes (such as Belosepia) are not unknown. Remains of Fishes are very abundant in strata of Eocene age, especially in certain localities. The most famous depot for the fossil fishes of this period is the limestone of Monte Bolca, near Verona, which is interstratified with beds of vol- canic ashes, the whole being referable to the Middle Eocene. The fishes here seem to have been suddenly destroyed by a volcanic eruption, and are found in vast numbers. Agassiz has described over one hundred and thirty species of Fishes from this locality, belonging to seventy-seven genera. All the species are extinct ; but about one-half of the genera are represented by living forms. The great majority of the Fig. 223. — Rhombus minimus, a small fossil Turbot from the Eocene Tertiary, Monte Bolca. Eocene Fishes belong to the order of the "Bony Fishes" (Te/eosfeans), so that in the main the forms of Fishes charac- terising the Eocene are similar to those which predominate in existing seas. In addition to the above, a few Ganoids and a large number of Placoids are known to occur in the Eocene rocks. Amongst the latter are found numerous teeth of true Sharks, such as Otodus (fig. 224) and Carcharodon. The pointed and serrated teeth of the latter sometimes attain a length of over half a foot, indicating that these predaceous fishes attained gigantic dimensions ; and it is interesting to note that teeth, in external appearance very similar to those of the early Tertiary genus Carcharodon, have been dredged from great depths during the recent expedition of the Chal- lenger. There also occur not uncommonly the flattened 296 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. teeth of Rays (fig. 225), consisting of flat bony pieces placed close together, and forming " a kind of mosaic pavement on both the upper and lower jaws " (Owen). In the class of the Reptiles, the disappearance of the char- Fig. 224. — Tooth of Fig. 225. — Flattened dental plates of a Ray Otodus obliquus. (Myliobatis Ediuardsii). Eocene. Eocene. acteristic Mesozoic types is as marked a phenomenon as the introduction of new forms. The Ichthyosaurs, the Plesio- saurs, the Pterosaurs, and the Mosasaurs of the Mesozoic, find no representatives in the Eocene Tertiary ; and the same is true of the Deinosaurs, if we except a few remains from the doubtfully-situated " Lignitic formation " of the United States. On the other hand, all the modern orders of Reptiles are known to have existed during the Eocene period. The Chelonians are represented by true marine Turtles, by " Ter- rapins" (Emydidcz), and by "Soft Tortoises" (Trionyddce]. The order of the Snakes and Serpents (Ophidia) makes its appearance here for the first time under several forms— all of which, however, are referable to the non-venomous group of the " Constricting Serpents " (Boida). The oldest of these is the Palaophis toliapiciis of the London Clay of Sheppey, first made known to science by the researches of Professor Owen. The nearly - allied Palaophis typhaus of the Eocene beds of Bracklesham appears to have been a Boa-constrictor- like Snake of about twenty feet in length. Similar Python- like Snakes (Pal&ophis, Dinophis, £c.) have been described from the Eocene deposits of the United States. True Lizards (Lacertilians] are found in some abundance in the Eocene deposits, — some being small terrestrial forms, like the common European lizards of the present day ; whilst others equal or exceed the living Monitors in size. Lastly, the modern order of the Crocodilia is largely represented in Eocene times, by species belonging to all the existing genera, together with others referable to extinct types. As pointed out by Owen, it is an interesting fact that in the Eocene rocks of the south- THE EOCENE PERIOD. 297 west of England, there occur fossil remains of all the three living types of Crocodilians — namely, the Gavials, the true Crocodiles, and the Alligators (fig. 226) — though at the Fig. 226. — Upper jaw of Alligator. Eocene Tertiary, Isle of Wight. present day these forms are all geographically restricted in their range, and' are never associated together. Almost all the existing orders of Birds, if not all, are represented in the Eocene deposits by remains often very closely allied to existing types. Thus, amongst the Swimming Birds (Natafores) we find examples of forms allied to the living Pelicans and Mergansers; amongst the Waders (Gral- latores) we have birds resembling the Ibis (the Numenius gypsorum of the Paris basin) ; amongst the Running Birds ( Cursores] we meet with the great Gastornis Parisiensis, which equalled the African Ostrich in height, and the still more gigantic Dasornis Londinensis ; remains of a Partridge rep- resent the Scratching Birds (Rasores) ; the American Eocene has yielded the bones of one of the Climbing Birds (Sca/i- sores], apparently referable to the Woodpeckers ; the Protornis Glarisiensis of the Eocene Schists of Claris is the oldest knowh example of the Perching Birds (Insessores) ; and the Birds of Prey (Raptores} are represented by Vultures, Owls, and Hawks. The toothed Birds of the Upper Cretaceous are no longer known to exist ; but Professor Owen has recently described from the London Clay the skull of a very remarkable Bird, in which there is, at any rate, an approxi- mation to the structure of Ichthyornis and Hcsperornis. The bird in question has been named the Odontopteryx toliapicus, its generic "title being derived from the very remarkable char- acters of its jaws. In this singular form (fig. 227) the margins 298 HISTORICAL PALAEONTOLOGY. of both jaws are furnished with tooth-like denticulations, which differ from true teeth in being actually portions of the bony Fig. 227. — Skull of Odontopteryx toliaficus, restored. (After Owen.) substance of the jaw itself, with which they are continuous, and which were probably encased by extensions of the horny sheath of the bill. These tooth -like processes are of two cizes, the larger ones being comparable to canines ; and they are all directed forwards, and have a triangular or compressed conical form. From a careful consideration of all the dis- covered remains of this bird, Professor Owen concludes that "Odontopteryx was a warm-blooded feathered biped, with wings ; and further, that it was web-footed and a fish-eater, and that in the catching of its slippery prey it was assisted by this Pterosauroid armature of its jaws." Upon the whole, Odontopteryx would appear to be most nearly related to the family of the Geese (Anserince) or Ducks (Anatidce) ; but the extension of the bony substance of the jaws into tooth-like processes is an entirely unique character, in which it stands quite alone. The known Mammals of the Mesozoic period, as we have seen, are all of small size ; and with one not unequivocal exception, they appear to be referable to the order of the Pouched Quadrupeds (Marsupials), almost the lowest group of the whole class of the Mammalia. In the Eocene rocks, on the other hand, numerous remains of Quadrupeds have been brought to light, representing most of the great Mam- malian orders now in existence upon the earth, and in many cases indicating animals of very considerable dimensions. We are, in fact, in a position to assert that the majority of the great groups of Quadrupeds with which we are familiar at the present day were already in existence in the Eocene period, and that their ancient root-stocks were even in this early time separated by most of the fundamental differences of structure THE EOCENE PERIOD. 299 which distinguish their living representatives. At the same time, there are some amongst the Eocene quadrupeds .which have a " generalised " character, and which may be regarded as structural types standing midway between groups now sharply separated from one another. The order of the Marsupials — including the existing Kan- garoos, Wombats, Opossums, Phalangers, &c. — is poorly represented in deposits of Eocene age. The most celebrated example of this group is the Didelphys gypsorum of the Gypseous beds of Montmartre, near Paris, an Opossum very nearly allied to the living Opossums of North and South America. No member of the Edentates (Sloths, Ant-eaters, and Arma- dillos) has hitherto been detected in any Eocene deposit. The aquatic order of the Sirenians (Dugongs and Manatees), with their fish-like bodies and tails, paddle - shaped fore- limbs, and wholly deficient hind-limbs, are represented in strata of this age by remains of the ancient " Sea-Cows," to which the name of Halitherium has been applied. Nearly allied to the preceding is the likewise aquatic order of the Whales and Dolphins (Cetaceans], in which the body is also fish-like, the hind-limbs are wanting, the fore-limbs are con- verted into powerful " flippers " or swimming-paddles, and the terminal extremity of the body is furnished with a horizontal tail-fin. Many existing Cetaceans (such as the Whalebone Whales) have no true teeth ; but others (Dol- phins, Porpoises, Sperm Whales) possess simple conical teeth. Fig. 228. — Zeuglodon eetoides. A, Molar tooth of the natural size ; B, Vertebra, reduced in size. From the Middle Eocene of the United States. (After Lyell.) In strata of Eocene age, however, we find a singular group of Whales, constituting the genus Zeuglodon (fig. 228), in 300 HISTORICAL PALEONTOLOGY. which the teeth differed from those of all existing forms in being of two kinds, — the front ones being conical incisors, whilst the back teeth or molars have serrated triangular crowns, and are inserted in the jaw by two roots. Each molar (fig. 228, A) looks as if it were composed of two separate teeth united on one side by their crowns ; and it is this peculiarity which is expressed by the generic name (Gr. zeugle, a yoke; odous, tooth). The be^t- known species of the genus is the Zeuglodon cetoides of Owen, which attained a length of seventy feet. Remains of these gigantic Whales are very common in the " Jackson Beds " of the Southern United States. So common are they that, according to Dana, " the large vertebrae, some of them a foot and a half long and a foot in diameter, were formerly so abundant over the country, in Alabama, that they were used for making walls, or were burned to rid the fields of them." The great and important«-order of the Hoofed Quadrupeds ( Ungiilata) is represented in the Eocene by examples of both ot its two principal sections — namely, those with an uneven number of toes (one or three) on the foot (Perissodacfyk Ungu- lates], and those with an even number of toes (two or four) to each foot (Artiodactyle Ungulates}. Amongst the Odd-toed Ungulates, the living family of the Tapirs (Tapiridte) is repre- sented by the genus Coryphodon of Owen. Nearly related to the preceding are the species of Palceotherium, which have a historical interest as being amongst the first of the Tertiary Mammals investigated by the illustrious Cuvier. Several species of Palaothere are known, varying greatly in size, the smallest being little bigger than a hare, whilst the largest must have equalled a good-sized horse in its dimensions. The species of Palceotherium appear to have agreed with the existing Tapirs in possessing a lengthened and flexible nose, which formed a short proboscis or trunk (fig. 229), suitable as an instrument for stripping off the foliage of trees — the char- acters of the molar teeth showing them to have been strictly herbivorous in their habits. They differ, however, from the Tapirs, amongst other characters, in the fact that both the fore and the hind feet possessed three toes each ; whereas in the latter there are four toes on each fore-foot, and the hind- feet alone are three-toed. The remains of PalceotJieria have been found in such abundance in certain localities as to show that these animals roamed in great herds over the fertile plains of France and the south of England during the later portion of the Eocene period. The accompanying illustration (fig. 229) represents the notion which the great Cuvier was induced THE EOCENE PERIOD. 301 by bis researches to form as to the outward appearance of Pafaotherium magnum. Recent discoveries, however, have Fig. 229. — Outline of Pal